Selected quad for the lemma: authority_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
authority_n church_n reason_n scripture_n 9,222 5 6.2628 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A02630 An ansvvere to Maister Iuelles chalenge, by Doctor Harding Harding, Thomas, 1516-1572. 1564 (1564) STC 12758; ESTC S103740 230,710 411

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

that_o the_o sacrament_n in_o sundry_a portion_n consecrate_v by_o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v send_v a_o broad_a among_o the_o church_n for_o cause_n of_o heretic_n that_o the_o catholic_a people_n of_o the_o church_n which_o word_n here_o signify_v as_o the_o greke_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o undestand_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v direct_v only_o to_o the_o material_a church_n but_o to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o parrish_n may_v receive_v the_o catholic_a communion_n and_o not_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n which_o doubteles_o must_v be_v undestand_v of_o this_o private_a and_o single_a communion_n in_o each_o catholic_a man_n house_n and_o that_o where_o heretic_n bear_v the_o swea_fw-mi and_o priest_n may_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o consecrate_v after_o the_o catholic_a usage_n else_o if_o the_o priest_n may_v with_o out_o let_v or_o disturbance_n have_v so_o do_v than_o what_o need_n have_v it_o be_v for_o milciades_n to_o have_v make_v such_o a_o provision_n for_o send_v abroad_o host_n sanctify_v for_o that_o purpose_n by_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o place_n of_o damasus_n have_v thus_o milciades_n fecit_fw-la ut_fw-la oblationes_fw-la consecratae_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la ex_fw-la consecratu_fw-la episcopi_n propter_fw-la haereticos_fw-la dirigerentur_fw-la milciades_n ordain_v that_o consecrate_a host_n shall_v be_v send_v abroad_o amongst_o the_o church_n prepare_v by_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o two_o word_n propter_fw-la haereticos_fw-la for_o heretic_n add_v by_o ado_n the_o writer_n of_o martyr_n lyve_n open_v the_o meaning_n and_o purporte_n of_o that_o decree_n here_o have_v i_o bring_v much_o for_o proufe_v of_o private_a and_o single_a communion_n and_o that_o it_o have_v not_o only_o be_v suffer_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n but_o also_o allow_v in_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a time_n even_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o where_o true_a religion_n have_v ever_o be_v most_o exact_o observe_v above_o all_o other_o place_n of_o the_o world_n and_o from_o whence_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o west_n have_v take_v their_o light_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o gallia_n that_o now_o be_v call_v france_n do_v acknowledge_v in_o a_o epistle_n send_v to_o leo_n the_o pope_n with_o these_o word_n vnde_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la propicio_fw-la christo_fw-la leonis_fw-la epistola_fw-la proxima_fw-la post_fw-la 51._o inter_fw-la epistolas_fw-la leonis_fw-la fons_fw-la &_o origo_fw-la manavit_fw-la from_o that_o apostolic_a see_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n the_o fontaine_n and_o spring_n of_o our_o religion_n have_v come_v more_o can_v i_o yet_o bring_v for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o as_o the_o example_n of_o s._n hilaria_n the_o virgin_n in_o the_o time_n of_o numerianus_n of_o s._n lucia_n in_o diocletians_n time_n do_v to_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n maria_n aegyptiaca_n and_o of_o s._n ambros_n of_o which_o every_o one_o as_o ancient_a testimony_n of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o of_o paulinus_n do_v declare_v at_o the_o hour_n of_o their_o departure_n hence_o to_o god_n receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o th'altar_n for_o their_o voyage_n provision_n alone_o but_o i_o judge_v this_o be_v enough_o and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v not_o be_v persuade_v with_o this_o i_o doubt_n whether_o with_o such_o a_o one_o a_o more_o number_n of_o autority_n shall_v any_o thing_n privaile_v now_o that_o i_o have_v thus_o prove_v the_o single_a communion_n i_o use_v their_o own_o term_n i_o desire_v m._n juell_n to_o reason_n with_o i_o sober_o a_o word_n or_o two_o how_o say_v you_o sir_n do_v you_o reprove_v the_o mass_n or_o do_v you_o reprove_v the_o private_a mass_n i_o think_v what_o so_o ever_o your_o opinion_n be_v herein_o your_o answer_n shall_v be_v you_o allow_v not_o the_o private_a mass_n for_o as_o touch_v that_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o proper_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n command_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v frequent_v according_a to_o his_o institution_n if_o you_o deny_v this_o make_v it_o so_o light_a as_o you_o list_v all_o those_o authority_n which_o you_o deny_v we_o to_o have_v for_o proufe_v of_o your_o great_a number_n of_o article_n will_v be_v find_v against_o you_o i_o mean_v doctoures_fw-la general_a council_n the_o most_o ancient_a the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o scripture_n i_o add_v further_a reason_n consent_v universal_a and_o uncontrolled_a and_o tradition_n if_o you_o deny_v this_o you_o must_v deny_v all_o our_o religion_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o day_n and_o now_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o iniquity_n abound_v and_o charity_n wax_v cold_a when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v scarce_o find_v faith_n in_o the_o earth_n begin_v a_o new_a and_o therefore_o you_o m._n juell_n know_v this_o well_o enough_o what_o so_o ever_o you_o do_v in_o deed_n in_o word_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o little_a book_n you_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o print_n you_o pretend_v to_o disallow_v yea_o most_o vehement_o to_o improve_v the_o private_a mass_n upon_o this_o resolution_n that_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o be_v take_v in_o general_a be_v to_o be_v allow_v i_o enter_v further_o in_o reason_n with_o you_o and_o make_v you_o this_o argument_n if_o private_a mass_n in_o respect_n only_o of_o that_o it_o be_v private_a after_o your_o meaning_n be_v reprovable_a it_o be_v for_o the_o single_a communion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o that_o the_o priest_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n alone_o but_o the_o single_a communion_n be_v lawful_a yea_o good_a and_o godly_a ergo_fw-la the_o private_a mass_n in_o this_o respect_n that_o it_o be_v private_a be_v not_o reprovable_a but_o to_o be_v allow_v hold_v for_o good_a and_o holy_a and_o to_o be_v frequent_v if_o you_o deny_v the_o first_o proposition_n or_o mayor_n then_o must_v yove_o show_v for_o what_o else_o you_o do_v reprove_v private_a mass_n in_o respect_n only_o that_o it_o be_v private_a then_o for_o single_a communion_n if_o you_o show_v any_o thing_n else_o then_o do_v you_o digress_v from_o our_o purpose_n and_o declare_v that_o you_o reprove_v the_o mass_n the_o minor_a you_o can_v not_o deny_v see_v that_o you_o see_v how_o sufficient_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o and_o so_o the_o private_a mass_n in_o that_o respect_n only_o it_o be_v private_a be_v to_o be_v allow_v for_o good_a as_o the_o mass_n be_v marry_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v more_o commendable_a and_o more_o godly_a on_o the_o church_n part_n if_o many_o well_o dispose_v and_o examine_v will_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n with_o the_o priest_n but_o though_o the_o clergy_n be_v worthy_o blame_v for_o negligence_n herein_o through_o which_o the_o people_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v grow_v to_o this_o slaknes_n and_o indevotion_n yet_o that_o notwithstanding_o this_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n remain_v sound_n and_o faultless_a for_o as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o mass_n itself_o by_o the_o single_a communion_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o case_n of_o the_o people_n coldness_n and_o negligence_n it_o be_v nothing_o impair_v else_o if_o the_o public_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o be_v offer_v with_o out_o a_o number_n of_o communicantes_fw-la receive_v with_o the_o priest_n in_o one_o place_n then_o will_v the_o ancient_a father_n in_o all_o their_o write_n some_o where_n have_v complain_v of_o the_o cease_n of_o that_o which_o every_o where_o they_o call_v quotidianum_fw-la &_o iuge_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la the_o daily_a and_o continual_a sacrifice_n of_o which_o their_o opinion_n be_v that_o it_o ought_v daily_o to_o be_v sacrifice_v that_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n may_v always_o be_v celebrate_v and_o have_v in_o memory_n and_o we_o thereby_o show_v ourselves_o according_a to_o our_o bind_a duty_n mindful_a and_o thankful_a but_o very_o the_o father_n no_o where_n complain_v of_o intermit_a the_o daily_a sacrifice_n but_o very_o much_o of_o the_o slaknes_n of_o the_o people_n for_o that_o they_o come_v not_o more_o often_o unto_o this_o holy_a and_o wholesome_a banquet_n and_o yet_o they_o never_o compel_v they_o thereto_o but_o exhort_v they_o to_o frequent_v it_o worthy_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o conscience_n s._n ambros_n witness_v that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o east_n have_v a_o custom_n in_o his_o time_n to_o be_v housel_v but_o once_o in_o the_o year_n and_o he_o rebuke_v sharp_o such_o as_o follow_v they_o after_o this_o sort_n si_fw-mi quotidianus_fw-la est_fw-la cibus_fw-la 4_o lib._n 6._o de_fw-la sacra_fw-la ca._n 4_o cur_n post_fw-la annum_fw-la illum_fw-la sumis_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la graeci_fw-la in_o oriente_fw-la facere_fw-la
praecipuè_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la quae_fw-la caput_fw-la est_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la and_o special_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n name_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o mean_v the_o bishop_n there_o or_o his_o legate_n to_o be_v send_v in_o his_o stead_n thus_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o good_a and_o ancient_a auctority_n that_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o head_n ruler_n precedent_n chief_a and_o principal_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o the_o father_n attribute_v not_o only_o to_o peter_n but_o also_o to_o his_o successor_n bishop_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o therefore_o m._n juell_n may_v think_v himself_o by_o this_o charitable_o admonish_v to_o remember_v his_o promise_n of_o yield_v and_o subscribe_v i_o will_v add_v to_o all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v of_o this_o matter_n a_o say_n of_o martin_n luther_n that_o such_o as_o do_v little_a regard_n the_o gravity_n of_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o old_a church_n may_v yet_o somewhat_o be_v move_v with_o the_o lightness_n of_o the_o young_a father_n luther_n patriarch_n and_o fownder_n of_o their_o new_a church_n lightness_n i_o may_v well_o call_v it_o for_o in_o this_o say_n which_o i_o shall_v here_o rehearse_v he_o do_v not_o so_o sober_o allow_v the_o pope_n primacy_n luther_n the_o pope_n primacy_n acknowlege_v by_o martin_n luther_n as_o in_o sundry_a other_o treatise_n he_o do_v rash_o and_o furiouse_o inveigh_v against_o the_o same_o in_o a_o little_a treatise_n entitle_v resolutio_fw-la lutheriana_n super_fw-la propositione_n sva_fw-la 13._o de_fw-la potestate_fw-la papae_fw-la his_o word_n be_v these_o primum_fw-la quod_fw-la i_o movet_fw-la romanum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la esse_fw-la alijs_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quos_fw-la saltem_fw-la noverimus_fw-la se_fw-la pontifices_fw-la gerere_fw-la superiorem_fw-la est_fw-la ipsa_fw-la voluntas_fw-la dei_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la videmus_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la sine_fw-la voluntate_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o hanc_fw-la monarchiam_fw-la unquam_fw-la venire_fw-la potuisset_fw-la rom._n pontifex_fw-la at_o voluntas_fw-la dei_fw-la quoquo_fw-la modo_fw-la nota_fw-la fuerit_fw-la cum_fw-la reverentia_fw-la suscipienda_fw-la est_fw-la ideoque_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la temerè_fw-la romano_n pontifici_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la primatu_fw-la resistere_fw-la haec_fw-la autem_fw-la ratio_fw-la tanta_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la si_fw-la etiam_fw-la nulla_fw-la scriptura_fw-la nulla_fw-la alia_fw-la causa_fw-la esset_fw-la haec_fw-la tamen_fw-la satis_fw-la esset_fw-la ad_fw-la compescendam_fw-la temeritatem_fw-la resistentium_fw-la et_fw-la hac_fw-la sola_fw-la ratione_fw-la gloriosissimus_fw-la martyr_n cyprianus_n per_fw-la multas_fw-la epistolas_fw-la confidentissimè_fw-la gloriatur_fw-la contrà_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la quorumcunque_fw-la adversarios_fw-la sicut_fw-la 3._o regum_fw-la legimus_fw-la quòd_fw-la decen_n tribus_fw-la israel_n discesserunt_fw-la à_fw-la roboam_n filio_fw-la salomonis_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la quia_fw-la voluntate_fw-la dei_fw-la sive_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la ratum_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la fuit_fw-la no_o &_o apud_fw-la theologos_fw-la omnes_fw-la voluntas_fw-la signi_fw-la quam_fw-la vocant_fw-la operationem_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la quàm_fw-la alia_fw-la signa_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la dei_fw-la ut_fw-la praecepta_fw-la prohibitiva_fw-la etc_n metuenda_fw-la est_fw-la ideo_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la quomodo_fw-la sint_fw-la excusati_fw-la à_fw-la schismatis_fw-la reatu_fw-la qui_fw-la huic_fw-la voluntati_fw-la contravenientes_fw-la seize_v à_fw-fr romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la subtrahunt_fw-la ecce_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la una_fw-la prima_fw-la mihi_fw-la insuperabilis_fw-la ratio_fw-la quae_fw-la i_o subijcit_fw-la romano_n pontifici_fw-la &_o primatum_fw-la eius_fw-la confiteri_fw-la cogit_fw-la the_o first_o thing_n that_o move_v i_o to_o think_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n to_o be_v over_o all_o other_o that_o we_o know_v to_o be_v bishop_n be_v the_o very_a will_n of_o god_n which_o we_o see_v in_o the_o fact_n or_o deed_n itself_o for_o without_o the_o will_n of_o god_n the_o b._n of_o rome_n can_v never_o have_v come_v unto_o this_o monarchy_n but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n by_o what_o mean_v so_o ever_o it_o be_v know_v be_v to_o be_v receive_v reverent_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a rash_o to_o resist_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n in_o his_o primacy_n and_o this_o be_v so_o great_a a_o reason_n for_o the_o same_o that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n at_o all_o nor_o other_o reason_n yet_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o stay_v the_o rashness_n of_o they_o that_o resist_v and_o through_o this_o only_a reason_n the_o most_o gloriouse_a martyr_n cyprian_n in_o many_o of_o his_o epistle_n vaunt_v himself_o very_o bold_o against_o all_o the_o adversary_n of_o bishop_n what_o soever_o they_o be_v as_o in_o the_o third_o book_n of_o the_o king_n we_o read_v that_o the_o ten_o tribe_n of_o israel_n depart_v from_o roboam_n salomon_n son_n yeat_a because_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o will_n or_o authority_n of_o god_n it_o stand_v in_o effect_n with_o god_n for_o among_o all_o the_o divine_n the_o will_n of_o the_o sign_n which_o they_o call_v the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v fear_v no_o less_o than_o other_o sign_n of_o god_n will_v as_o commandment_n prohibitive_a etc_n therefore_o i_o see_v not_o how_o they_o may_v be_v excuse_v of_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n which_o go_v against_o this_o will_n withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n lo_o this_o be_v one_o chief_a invincible_a reason_n that_o make_v i_o to_o be_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o compel_v i_o to_o confess_v his_o primacy_n this_o far_a luther_n thus_o i_o have_v brief_o touch_v some_o deal_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o emperor_n of_o the_o father_n say_n of_o the_o reason_n and_o of_o the_o manifold_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v allege_v for_o the_o pope_n primacy_n and_o supreme_a authority_n with_o all_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o which_o m._n juell_n deny_v that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n within_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n have_v be_v call_v the_o universal_a bishop_n of_o no_o small_a number_n of_o man_n of_o great_a credit_n and_o very_o oftentimes_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n both_o in_o term_n equivalent_a and_o also_o express_o now_o to_o the_o next_o article_n or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v then_o teach_v to_o believe_v juell_n juell_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o substantial_o corporal_o carnal_o or_o natural_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o term_n real_o substantial_o corporal_o carnal_o natural_o found_n in_o the_o doctor_n treat_v of_o the_o true_a be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n article_n v._o christen_n people_n have_v ever_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o unspeakable_a work_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v present_a in_o this_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o that_o very_o and_o in_o deed_n this_o doctrine_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o utter_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n express_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o by_o s._n paul_n as_o they_o be_v at_o supper_n say_v matthew_n jesus_n take_v bread_n and_o bless_v it_o and_o break_v it_o 26_o matth._n 26_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v take_v you_o eat_v you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o take_v the_o cup_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o give_v it_o to_o they_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o in_o remission_n of_o sin_n with_o like_a word_n almost_o mark_v luke_n and_o paul_n 11._o marc._n 14._o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11._o do_v describe_v this_o divine_a institution_n neither_o say_v our_o lord_n only_o this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o least_o some_o shall_v doubt_n how_o his_o word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v for_o a_o plain_a declaration_n of_o they_o he_o add_v this_o further_a which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o 22._o luc._n 22._o likewise_o of_o the_o cup_n he_o say_v not_o only_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n but_o also_o as_o it_o be_v to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o now_o as_o faithful_a people_n do_v believe_v that_o christ_n give_v not_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n but_o his_o own_o true_a and_o very_a body_n in_o substance_n and_o like_o wise_a not_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o blood_n but_o his_o very_a pretiouse_a blood_n itself_o at_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n on_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o redemption_n so_o they_o believe_v also_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n admit_v no_o other_o understanding_n but_o that_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o in_o these_o holy_a mystery_n his_o self_n same_o body_n and_o his_o self_n same_o blood_n in_o truth_n of_o
to_o conclude_v the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o we_o certain_a the_o manner_n of_o his_o be_v there_o to_o we_o uncertain_a and_o to_o god_n only_o certain_a juell_n juell_n or_o that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o cause_n of_o true_a devotion_n and_o obedience_n master_n juell_n have_v great_a need_n of_o article_n for_o some_o show_n to_o be_v make_v against_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o he_o advise_v himself_o to_o put_v this_o in_o for_o a_o article_n very_o this_o be_v none_o of_o the_o high_a mystery_n nor_o none_o of_o the_o great_a key_n of_o our_o religion_n as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v but_o untrue_o and_o know_v that_o for_o a_o untruth_n for_o himself_o impute_v it_o to_o d._n cole_n 77._o fol._n 77._o in_o his_o reply_n to_o he_o as_o a_o strange_a say_n by_o he_o utter_v in_o the_o disputation_n at_o westminster_n to_o the_o wonder_v of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o honourable_a and_o worshipful_a of_o this_o realm_n if_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o high_a mystery_n and_o great_a key_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n i_o trust_v the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o honourable_a and_o worshipful_a of_o the_o realm_n will_v not_o wonder_v at_o it_o concern_v the_o matter_n itself_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o d._n cole_n he_o be_v of_o age_n to_o answer_v for_o himself_o whether_o he_o say_v it_o or_o no_o i_o know_v not_o as_o he_o be_v learned_a wise_a and_o godly_a so_o i_o doubt_n not_o but_o if_o he_o say_v it_o therein_o he_o have_v a_o good_a meaning_n and_o can_v show_v good_a reason_n for_o the_o same_o if_o he_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o declare_v his_o say_n as_o wise_a man_n will_v the_o law_n to_o be_v declare_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o as_o the_o mind_n be_v take_v and_o the_o word_n speak_v not_o always_o rigorous_o exact_v august_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 4._o haec_fw-la mea_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la quoniam_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la catholica_fw-la fides_fw-la this_o be_v my_o faith_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o conclusion_n exhort_v m._n juell_n to_o stand_v to_o his_o promise_n thus_o your_o challenge_n m._n juell_n be_v answer_v thus_o your_o negative_n be_v avouch_v thus_o the_o point_n you_o go_v about_o to_o improve_v by_o good_a authority_n be_v prove_v and_o many_o other_o by_o you_o over_o rash_o affirm_v clear_o improve_v thus_o the_o catholic_a religion_n with_o all_o your_o force_n lay_v at_o and_o impugn_a be_v sufficient_o defend_v the_o place_n of_o prouse_n which_o we_o have_v here_o use_v be_v such_o as_o yourself_o allow_v for_o good_a and_o lawful_a the_o scripture_n example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ancient_a council_n and_o the_o father_n of_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n you_o may_v and_o ought_v likewise_o to_o have_v allow_v reason_n tradition_n custom_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n without_o limitation_n of_o tyme._n the_o manner_n of_o this_o deal_n with_o you_o be_v gentle_a sober_a and_o charitable_a put_v away_o all_o mist_n of_o blind_a self_n love_n you_o shall_v perceive_v the_o same_o to_o be_v so_o the_o purpose_n and_o intent_n towards_o you_o right_a good_a and_o love_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o truth_n no_o less_o then_o due_a for_o behoof_n of_o christian_a people_n no_o less_o than_o necessary_a that_o you_o hereby_o may_v be_v enduce_v to_o bethink_v yourself_o of_o that_o wherein_o you_o have_v do_v unaduised_o and_o stay_v from_o hasty_a run_v forth_o prickte_v with_o vain_a favour_n and_o praise_n of_o the_o world_n to_o everlasting_a damnation_n appoint_v to_o be_v the_o reward_n at_o the_o end_n of_o your_o game_n that_o truth_n may_v thus_o be_v try_v set_v forth_o and_o defend_v and_o that_o our_o brethren_n be_v leadde_a as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n from_o perilous_a error_n and_o danger_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o a_o right_a sense_n and_o to_o surety_n now_o it_o remain_v that_o you_o perform_v your_o promise_n which_o be_v that_o if_o any_o one_o clear_a sentence_n or_o clause_n be_v bring_v for_o proufe_v of_o any_o one_o of_o all_o your_o negative_a article_n you_o will_v yield_v and_o subscribe_v what_o have_v be_v bring_v every_o one_o that_o wilful_o will_v not_o blindefold_a himself_o may_v plain_o see_v if_o some_o happy_o who_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v both_o eye_n and_o ear_n and_o to_o be_v right_o learned_a will_v say_v hereof_o they_o see_v hear_v nothing_o no_o marvel_n the_o favour_n of_o the_o part_n whereto_o they_o cleave_v have_v cut_v of_o themselves_o from_o the_o body_n the_o despite_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o church_n have_v so_o blind_v their_o heart_n as_o place_n allege_v to_o the_o disproufe_v of_o their_o false_a doctrine_n be_v never_o so_o evident_a they_o see_v not_o ne_o hear_v not_o or_o rather_o they_o see_v see_v not_o 13._o matt._n 13._o ne_o hear_v hear_v not_o very_o you_o must_v either_o refuse_v the_o balance_n which_o yourself_o have_v offer_v and_o require_v for_o trial_n of_o these_o article_n which_o be_v the_o scripture_n example_n council_n and_o doctor_n of_o antiquity_n or_o the_o better_a weight_n of_o authority_n sway_v to_o our_o side_n that_o be_v the_o truth_n find_v in_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o not_o in_o the_o mangle_a dissension_n of_o the_o gospeler_n advise_o return_v from_o whence_o unaduised_o you_o have_v depart_v humble_o yield_v to_o that_o you_o have_v stubborn_o kickte_v against_o and_o embrace_v holesom_o that_o which_o you_o have_v hate_v damnable_o touch_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n command_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n that_o it_o have_v be_v and_o may_v be_v well_o and_o godly_a celebrate_v without_o a_o number_n of_o communicantes_fw-la with_o the_o priest_n together_o in_o one_o place_n which_o you_o call_v private_a mass_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o your_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o the_o communion_n be_v then_o sometime_o as_o now_o also_o it_o be_v and_o may_v be_v minister_v under_o one_o kind_n of_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n or_o common_a prayer_n in_o a_o tongue_n not_o know_v to_o all_o the_o people_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v sometime_o call_v universal_a bishop_n and_o both_o call_v and_o hold_v for_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o by_o ancient_a doctoures_fw-la it_o have_v be_v teach_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v real_o substantial_o corporal_o carnal_o or_o natural_o in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o wondrous_a but_o true_a be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o mo_z place_n at_o one_o time_n and_o of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o rather_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o have_v bring_v good_a and_o sufficient_a proof_n allege_v for_o the_o more_o part_n of_o these_o article_n the_o scripture_n and_o for_o all_o right_o good_a evidence_n out_o of_o ancient_a example_n council_n or_o father_n concern_v elevation_n reservation_n remain_v of_o the_o accident_n without_o substance_n divide_v the_o host_n in_o three_o part_n the_o term_n of_o figure_n sign_n token_n etc._z apply_v to_o the_o sacrament_n many_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n the_o reverend_a use_n of_o image_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v have_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n for_o the_o common_a people_n to_o read_v which_o be_v matter_n not_o special_o treat_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n by_o express_a term_n all_o these_o have_v be_v sufficient_o avouch_v and_o prove_v either_o by_o proof_n by_o yourself_o allow_v or_o by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o your_o twelve_o last_o article_n which_o you_o put_v in_o by_o addition_n to_o the_o former_a for_o show_v of_o your_o courage_n and_o confidence_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o to_o seem_v to_o the_o ignorant_a to_o have_v much_o matter_n to_o charge_v we_o withal_o as_o it_o appear_v they_o report_v matter_n certain_a except_v of_o less_o importance_n some_o of_o they_o contain_v doctrine_n true_a i_o grant_v but_o over_o curiouse_a and_o not_o most_o necessary_a for_o the_o simple_a people_n some_o other_o be_v through_o the_o manner_n of_o your_o utterance_n pervert_v and_o in_o term_n draw_v from_o the_o sense_n they_o have_v be_v utter_v in_o by_o the_o church_n which_o by_o you_o be_v deny_v may_v of_o we_o also_o be_v deny_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o term_n they_o be_v express_v in_o be_v not_o a_o sleight_n of_o falsehood_n which_o may_v redound_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o truth_n therein_o worthy_o suspect_v very_o to_o they_o all_o we_o have_v say_v so_o much_o as_o to_o sober_a quiet_a and_o godly_a
after_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o gospeler_n new_a and_o use_v by_o satan_n 9_o b._n in_o what_o sense_n and_o consideration_n the_o mass_n call_v private_a of_o some_o doctor_n 9_o b._n what_o the_o lutheran_n call_v private_a mass_n 9_o b._n private_a mass_n in_o word_n but_o in_o deed_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n impugn_a by_o m._n juell_n 10._o a._n proof_n for_o the_o mass_n brief_o touch_v 10._o a._n the_o chief_a cause_n why_o the_o gospeler_n storm_v against_o private_a mass_n 11._o b._n three_o essentials_n of_o the_o mass_n 12._o b._n number_n of_o communicantes_fw-la place_n time_n with_o other_o rite_n be_v not_o of_o christ_n institution_n 12._o b._n why_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v a_o communion_n 14._o a._n there_o be_v a_o communion_n between_o the_o faithful_a though_o they_o be_v not_o together_o 14._o b._n necessity_n of_o many_o communicantes_fw-la together_o contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n 15._o a._n for_o mengle_a water_n with_o the_o wyne_fw-mi in_o the_o sacrament_n a_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o clement_n 15._o b._n many_o may_v communicate_v together_o not_o be_v in_o one_o place_n together_o 16._o a._n etc_n proof_n for_o private_a communion_n and_o consequent_o for_o private_a mass_n 17._o b._n etc_n reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 19_o b._n unclean_a do_n bewray_v at_o martyr_n tomb_n 20._o b._n light_n of_o the_o west_n church_n take_v from_o rome_n 21._o b._n the_o father_n oftentimes_o complain_v of_o the_o people_n forebearing_n the_o communion_n but_o no_o where_o of_o the_o priest_n cease_v from_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n 23._o a._n the_o people_n forebearing_n the_o communion_n be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o priest_n shall_v not_o say_v mass_n 24._o a._n mass_n do_v without_o a_o number_n of_o communicantes_fw-la in_o the_o same_o place_n 24._o b._n 25._o 26._o etc_n a_o true_a declaration_n of_o chysostomes_n place_n nullus_fw-la qui_fw-la communicetur_fw-la 30._o b._n 2._o christ_n word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o bound_v not_o the_o laity_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n 33._o a._n luther_n and_o his_o offspring_n do_v not_o necessitate_n communion_n under_o both_o kynde_n 34._o a._n etc_n luthere_n conference_n with_o the_o devil_n against_o the_o mass_n 34._o b_z cause_n move_v the_o church_n to_o communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n 36._o b._n the_o exact_v straightness_n of_o certain_a god_n ordinance_n may_v without_v offence_n in_o case_n be_v omit_v 37._o a._n b._n etc_n proof_n for_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n 40._o b._n 41._o etc_n our_o lord_n cup_n only_o in_o certain_a case_n minister_v 46._o a._n b_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o bread_n stype_v or_o dipte_v in_o the_o cup_n unlawful_a 46._o b._n the_o canon_n of_o gelasius_n guileful_o by_o m._n juell_n allege_v true_o examine_v 47._o b._n 48._o etc_n 3._o church_n service_n in_o due_a order_n dispose_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n before_o the_o latin_a church_n 51._o a._n usage_n of_o church_n service_n in_o any_o vulgar_a barbarouse_n tongue_n with_o in_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v 52._o a_o all_o people_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n understand_v not_o the_o greke_n service_n 53._o b._n 54._o etc_n m._n juelles_n allegation_n solute_v 57_o a._n etc_n justinianes_n ordinance_n true_o declare_v 58._o b._n m._n juell_n note_v of_o insinseritie_n and_o halt_n 58._o b._n 59_o a._n the_o number_n of_o language_n by_o account_n of_o the_o antiquity_n 59_o a._n b_o all_o people_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n understand_v not_o the_o latin_a service_n 60._o a._n 61._o 62._o etc_n the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o latin_a service_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 63._o a._n cednom_n the_o divine_a poet_n of_o england_n 65._o b._n the_o first_o entry_n of_o the_o english_a service_n 66._o a._n the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n make_v not_o for_o the_o service_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n 66._o b._n 67._o etc_n the_o word_n spirit_n in_o s_n paul_n diverse_o take_v of_o diverse_a 68_o a_o the_o benefit_n of_o prayer_n utter_v in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v 71._o a._n such_o nation_n as_o use_v church_n service_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n continewe_n in_o schism_n 73._o b._n 4._o of_o syx_n grownde_n that_o the_o pope_n supreme_a authority_n stand_v upon_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a god_n ordinance_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n expound_v 75._o b._n etc_n the_o 2._o council_n 77._o b._n the_o 3._o edict_n of_o emperor_n 79._o a._n the_o 4._o doctor_n 79._o b._n etc_n the_o 5._o reason_n 81._o a._n the_o 6._o practice_n of_o the_o church_n syxfolde_v 83._o a._n etc_n 1._o appellation_n to_o the_o pope_n 84._o a._n evil_a lyse_v of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n ought_v not_o to_o sever_v we_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 85._o b._n the_o 2._o practice_n correction_n from_o the_o pope_n 87._o a._n 3._o confirmation_n by_o the_o pope_n 78._o b._n 4._o the_o pope_n approve_v of_o council_n 88_o a._n 5._o absolution_n from_o the_o pope_n 89._o a_o 6._o reconciliation_n to_o the_o pope_n 89._o b_o the_o pope_n above_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o call_v universal_a bishop_n and_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 90._o b._n peter_n and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n peter_n successor_n call_v head_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o term_n equivalent_a and_o also_o express_o 91._o b._n etc_n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n call_v head_n of_o the_o church_n express_o 93._o a._n etc_n the_o pope_n primacy_n acknowlege_v and_o confess_v by_o martin_n luther_n 94._o b._n 5._o what_o occasion_v the_o father_n to_o use_v these_o term_n real_o substantial_o corporal_o etc_n 97._o b._n berengatius_fw-la the_o first_o sacramentarie_n 98._o a._n the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n of_o double_a consideration_n 98._o b._n bucer_n confess_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o deed_n and_o substantial_o 100_o b._n 6._o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n at_o one_o time_n impli_v no_o contradiction_n 105._o a._n christ_n body_n in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o 105._o b._n 106._o etc_n truth_n confess_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o truth_n 107._o b._n god_n work_v above_o nature_n distroy_v not_o nature_n 108._o b_o be_v in_o a_o mystery_n what_o it_o be_v 109._o a._n 7._o elevation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n prove_v 109._o b._n 110._o etc_n 8._o what_o christian_a people_n adore_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 112._o b._n 113._o etc_n contrariety_n in_o the_o first_o devyser_n of_o the_o new_a gospel_n 115._o a._n adoration_n prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o zwinglians_n against_o luther_n 115._o a._n etc_n the_o term_n concomitantia_fw-la by_o the_o divine_n profitable_o devyse_v 115._o b._n adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n avouch_v by_o the_o father_n 116._o b._n etc_n 9_o sundry_a manner_n of_o keep_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n 121._o b._n hang_v up_o of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o a_o pyxe_n over_o the_o altar_n be_v ancient_a 122._o b._n 10._o the_o remain_v of_o the_o only_a accident_n without_o substance_n in_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v of_o the_o article_n of_o transubstantiation_n 124._o a._n transubstantiation_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n avouch_v 124._o 125._o etc_n transubstantiation_n teach_v by_o the_o old_a father_n and_o by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n of_o late_a age_n 126._o 127._o accident_n beleve_v of_o some_o learned_a father_n to_o remain_v without_o substance_n at_o the_o beginning_n 127._o b._n 11._o what_o the_o divide_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n signify_v 128._o a._n the_o divide_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n probable_o think_v to_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n 128._o b._n 129._o a._n 12._o how_o the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o figure_n sign_n token_n etc._z 130._o a._n etc_n the_o word_n figure_n sign_n token_n remembrance_n etc_o exclude_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o be_v 134._o a._n 135._o etc_n 13._o lydford_n law_n use_v by_o the_o gospeler_n 139._o a._n plurality_n of_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n 139._o a._n etc_n this_o word_n sacrifice_n take_v for_o the_o mass_n 143._o b._n 14._o antiquity_n of_o image_n 145._o a._n the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n commend_v to_o man_n by_o god_n providence_n 145._o b._n literae_fw-la hieroglyphicae_fw-la 146._o b._n image_n from_o the_o apostle_n tyme._n 147._o b._n three_o cause_n why_o image_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n 150._o a._n pictura_fw-la loquens_fw-la poëma_fw-la tacens_fw-la 150._o b._n how_o image_n may_v be_v worship_v without_o offence_n 152._o a_o 15._o three_o sundry_a opinion_n concern_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v have_v in_o a_o vulgar_a
latin_a church_n long_o before_o the_o first_o syx_n hundred_o year_n be_v expire_v which_o be_v not_o deny_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v deny_v by_o m._n juell_n be_v this_o that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n any_o christian_a people_n have_v their_o service_n or_o common_a prayer_n in_o a_o tongue_n they_o understand_v not_o which_o they_o of_o his_o side_n bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n to_o be_v a_o haynouse_a erroure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o wicked_a deceit_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o i_o say_v as_o i_o say_v before_o that_o the_o service_n be_v then_o in_o a_o tongue_n which_o some_o people_n understand_v and_o some_o understand_v not_o i_o mean_v prove_v usage_n of_o church_n service_n in_o any_o vulgar_a tongue_n with_o in_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v the_o greek_a tongue_n and_o the_o latin_a tongue_n for_o that_o it_o be_v with_o in_o the_o syx_n hundred_o year_n in_o any_o other_o barbarous_a or_o vulgar_a tongue_n i_o never_o read_v neither_o i_o think_v m._n juell_n nor_o any_o the_o best_a learned_a of_o his_o side_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o better_o understand_v i_o call_v all_o tongue_n barbarous_a and_o vulgar_a beside_o the_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a the_o gospel_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v preach_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o syria_n and_o arabia_n by_o paul_n in_o egypte_n by_o mark_n in_o ethiopia_n by_o matthew_n in_o mesopotamia_n persia_n media_n bactra_n hyrcania_n parthia_n and_o carmania_n by_o thomas_n in_o armenia_n the_o great_a by_o barthelemew_n in_o scythia_n by_o androw_n and_o likewise_o in_o other_o country_n by_o apostolic_a man_n who_o be_v send_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o next_o successor_n as_o in_o france_n by_o martialis_n send_v by_o peter_n by_o dionysius_n send_v by_o clement_n by_o crescens_n as_o 46._o as_o constitutionun_n apostolicarun_v li._n 7._o c._n 46._o clement_n and_o ecclesiast_fw-la and_o lib._n de_fw-fr scriptori_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la hierome_n write_v and_o by_o trophimus_n s._n paul_n scholar_n and_o by_o nathanael_n christ_n disciple_n of_o who_o he_o at_o a_o relate_v and_o this_o at_o bourges_n and_o trevere_n preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o some_o record_n in_o our_o country_n here_o of_o britain_n by_o fugatius_n damianus_n and_o other_o send_v by_o eleutherius_fw-la the_o pope_n and_o martyr_n at_o the_o request_n of_o king_n lucius_n as_o damasus_n write_v in_o pontificali_fw-la 182_o temporibus_fw-la antonini_n comodi_fw-la anno_o do_v 182_o other_o country_n where_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a tongue_n be_v common_o know_v i_o pass_v over_o of_o purpose_n now_o if_o m._n juell_n or_o any_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n or_o any_o man_n lyve_v can_v show_v good_a evidence_n and_o proufe_v that_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n be_v then_o in_o the_o syriacall_a or_o arabike_a in_o the_o egyptian_a ethiopian_a persiam_n armenian_a scythian_a french_a or_o britain_n tongue_n then_o may_v they_o just_o claim_v prescription_n against_o we_o in_o this_o article_n then_o may_v they_o charge_v we_o with_o the_o example_n of_o antiquity_n then_o may_v they_o require_v we_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o manner_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o that_o doubteles_a can_v not_o appear_v which_o if_o any_o can_v show_v it_o will_v make_v much_o for_o the_o service_n to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n wherefore_o m._n juell_n in_o his_o sermon_n which_o he_o utter_v in_o so_o solemn_a a_o audience_n and_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o print_n to_o the_o world_n say_v more_o they_o he_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v 16._o folio_n 16._o where_o he_o speak_v general_o thus_o before_o the_o people_n grow_v to_o corruption_n whereby_o he_o mean_v the_o first_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n all_o christian_a man_n through_o out_o the_o world_n make_v their_o common_a prayer_n and_o have_v the_o holy_a communion_n in_o their_o own_o common_a and_o know_v tongue_n this_o be_v soon_o speak_v sir_n but_o it_o will_v not_o by_o you_o be_v so_o soon_o prove_v in_o deed_n we_o find_v that_o where_o as_o holy_a ephrem_fw-la deacon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o edessa_n write_v many_o thing_n in_o the_o syriacall_a tongue_n he_o be_v of_o so_o worthy_a same_o and_o renome_n ecclesiast_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr scriptori_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la that_o as_o s._n hierome_n witness_v his_o write_n be_v rehearse_v in_o certain_a church_n open_o post_fw-la lectionem_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la after_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v read_v whereof_o it_o appear_v to_o erasmus_n that_o nothing_o be_v wont_v then_o to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n beside_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o of_o such_o man_n as_o be_v of_o apostolic_a authority_n but_o by_o this_o place_n of_o s._n hierome_n it_o seem_v not_o that_o ephrem_n work_n be_v use_v as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o common_a service_n but_o rather_o as_o homily_n or_o exhortation_n to_o be_v read_v after_o the_o service_n which_o consist_v in_o manner_n whole_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o whether_o they_o be_v turn_v in_o to_o greke_n or_o no_o so_o soon_o it_o be_v uncertain_a neither_o s._n hieromes_n translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o to_o the_o dalmaticall_a tongue_n if_o any_o such_o be_v by_o he_o make_v at_o all_o prove_v that_o the_o service_n be_v then_o in_o that_o vulgar_a tongue_n that_o labour_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v serve_v to_o a_o other_o purpose_n but_o of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o vulgar_a tongue_n i_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o when_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o that_o peculiar_a article_n very_o the_o handle_n of_o this_o present_a and_o of_o that_o have_v most_o thing_n common_a to_o both_o thus_o that_o the_o people_n of_o any_o country_n have_v the_o church_n service_n in_o their_o vulgar_a and_o common_a tongue_n beside_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a tongue_n we_o leave_v as_o a_o matter_n stout_o affirm_v by_o m._n juell_n but_o faint_o prove_v yea_o nothing_o at_o all_o prove_v now_o concern_v the_o two_o learned_a tongue_n greek_a and_o latin_a and_o first_o the_o greek_a that_o the_o service_n be_v in_o the_o greke_n tongue_n and_o use_v in_o the_o greke_n church_n i_o grant_v and_o to_o show_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o learned_a do_v understand_v all_o the_o christian_a people_n of_o that_o country_n which_o proper_o be_v call_v graecia_n of_o macedonia_n thracia_n and_o of_o asia_n the_o lesser_a and_o the_o country_n adjoin_v the_o province_n that_o be_v allot_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n in_o egypte_n and_o to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antiochia_n in_o syria_n be_v of_o the_o old_a writer_n call_v sometime_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o oriental_a or_o east_n church_n sometime_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n this_o much_o by_o we_o both_o confess_v m._n juell_n and_o agree_v upon_o i_o say_v that_o if_o i_o can_v show_v that_o the_o people_n of_o some_o country_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o all_o have_v their_o common_a prayer_n and_o service_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n for_o the_o more_o part_n understand_v not_o the_o greke_n tongue_n more_o than_o english_a man_n now_o understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n then_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o i_o promise_v to_o prove_v that_o some_o people_n i_o mean_v whole_a nation_n understand_v not_o their_o service_n for_o that_o they_o have_v it_o in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n now_o how_o well_o i_o be_o able_a to_o prove_v this_o i_o refer_v it_o to_o your_o own_o consideration_n the_o lesser_a asia_n be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o greke_n church_n service_n all_o people_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n understand_v not_o the_o greke_n service_n have_v then_o the_o service_n in_o the_o greke_n tongue_n but_o the_o people_n of_o sundry_a region_n and_o country_n of_o the_o lesser_a asia_n than_o understand_v not_o the_o greke_n tongue_n ergo_fw-la the_o people_n of_o sundry_a region_n and_o country_n have_v then_o their_o service_n in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n the_o first_o proposition_n or_o mayor_n be_v confess_v as_o manifest_v no_o learned_a man_n will_v deny_v it_o and_o if_o any_o will_v it_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v the_o second_o proposition_n or_o minor_a may_v thus_o be_v prove_v strabo_n who_o travail_v over_o all_o the_o country_n of_o asia_n for_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o the_o same_o near_o about_o the_o time_n of_o s._n paul_n peregrination_n there_o who_o also_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o same_o in_o his_o 14._o book_n of_o geographie_n write_v that_o where_o as_o with_o in_o that_o cherronesus_n that_o be_v the_o straight_a between_o sea_n and_o sea_n there_o be_v syxten_n nation_n by_o report_n of_o ephorus_n of_o they_o all_o only_a three_o be_v greek_n all_o the_o rest_n barbarous_a likewise_o plinius_n
ecce_fw-la lingua_fw-la britanniae_fw-la quae_fw-la nil_fw-la aliud_fw-la noverat_fw-la quàm_fw-la barbarum_fw-la frendere_fw-la iam_fw-la dudum_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la laudibus_fw-la hebraeum_n coepit_fw-la halleluia_n resonare_fw-la behold_v our_o lord_n almighty_a have_v now_o pierce_v the_o heart_n almost_o of_o all_o nation_n behold_v he_o have_v join_v the_o border_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o west_n in_o one_o faith_n together_o behold_v the_o tongue_n of_o britain_n that_o can_v nothing_o else_o but_o gnashe_n barbarous_o have_v begin_v now_o of_o late_a in_o divine_a service_n to_o sound_n the_o hebrew_n halleluia_n bede_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o second_o book_n show_v that_o one_o james_n a_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o york_n a_o very_a cunning_a man_n in_o song_n soon_o after_o the_o faith_n have_v be_v spread_v abroad_o here_o as_o the_o number_n of_o believer_n grow_v begin_v to_o be_v a_o master_n or_o teacher_n of_o sing_v in_o the_o church_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o roman_n the_o like_a he_o write_v of_o one_o eddi_n surname_v stephanus_n that_o teach_v the_o people_n of_o northumberland_n to_o sing_v the_o service_n after_o the_o roman_a manner_n and_o of_o putta_n a_o holy_a man_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n commend_v he_o much_o for_o his_o great_a skille_n of_o sing_v in_o the_o church_n after_o the_o use_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o roman_n which_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o disciple_n of_o s._n gregory_n these_o be_v testimony_n plain_a and_o evident_a enough_o that_o at_o the_o begin_v the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v their_o divine_a service_n in_o latin_a and_o not_o in_o english_a one_o place_n more_o i_o will_v recite_v out_o of_o bede_n most_o manifest_a of_o all_o other_o for_o proufe_v hereof_o in_o the_o time_n of_o agatho_n the_o pope_n there_o be_v a_o reverend_a man_n call_v john_n archicantor_n that_o be_v chief_a chaunter_n or_o synger_n of_o s._n peter_n church_n at_o rome_n and_o abbot_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o s._n martin_n there_o benedicte_n a_o abbot_n of_o britain_n have_v build_v a_o monastery_n at_o the_o mowth_n of_o the_o river_n murus_n bede_n so_o call_v it_o sue_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o confirmation_n liberty_n fraunchesy_n privilege_n etc_o as_o in_o such_o case_n have_v be_v accustom_v among_o other_o thing_n he_o obtain_v this_o cunning_a chaunter_n john_n to_o come_v with_o he_o into_o britain_n to_o teach_v song_n because_o bede_n ecclesiastical_a story_n be_v not_o very_o common_a i_o have_v think_v good_a here_o to_o recite_v his_o own_o word_n thus_o english_v this_o abbot_n benedicte_n take_v with_o he_o the_o foresay_a john_n to_o bring_v he_o in_o to_o britain_n that_o he_o shall_v teach_v in_o his_o monastery_n the_o course_n of_o service_n for_o the_o whole_a year_n so_o as_o it_o be_v do_v at_o s._n peter_n in_o rome_n john_n do_v as_o he_o have_v commandment_n of_o the_o pope_n both_o in_o teach_v the_o sing_v man_n of_o the_o say_a monastery_n the_o order_n and_o rite_n of_o sing_v and_o read_v with_o utterance_n of_o their_o voice_n and_o also_o of_o writing_n and_o pryck_v those_o thing_n that_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o whole_a year_n require_v in_o the_o celebration_n and_o keep_v of_o the_o holy_a day_n which_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o same_o monastery_n till_o this_o day_n and_o be_v copy_v out_o of_o many_o round_o about_o on_o every_o cost_n neither_o do_v that_o john_n teach_v the_o brethren_n of_o that_o monastery_n only_o but_o also_o many_o other_o make_v all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v to_o gete_v he_o to_o other_o place_n where_o they_o may_v have_v he_o to_o teach_v this_o far_a bede_n i_o trow_v no_o man_n will_v think_v that_o this_o roman_a teach_v and_o write_v the_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o sing_v and_o pronounce_v the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o this_o land_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n if_o it_o have_v be_v deem_v of_o the_o learned_a and_o godly_a governor_n of_o christian_a people_n then_o a_o necessary_a point_n to_o salvation_n to_o have_v have_v the_o service_n in_o the_o english_a no_o man_n have_v be_v so_o apt_a and_o fit_a to_o have_v translate_v it_o as_o he_o who_o in_o those_o day_n have_v by_o special_a grace_n of_o god_n a_o singular_a gift_n to_o make_v song_n and_o sonnet_n in_o english_a metre_n to_o serve_v religion_n and_o devotion_n his_o name_n be_v cednom_n cednom_fw-la cednom_fw-la of_o who_o bede_n write_v merueilouse_a thing_n how_o he_o make_v diverse_a song_n contain_v matter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o such_o exceed_a swetenes_n and_o with_o such_o a_o grace_n as_o many_o feel_n their_o heart_n compuncte_v and_o prickte_v with_o hear_v and_o read_v of_o they_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v enkendle_v with_o the_o desyer_n of_o the_o heavenly_a life_n many_o say_v bede_n of_o th'english_fw-fr nation_n attempt_v after_o he_o to_o make_v religiouse_a and_o godly_a poetry_n but_o none_o can_v do_v comparable_o to_o he_o for_o he_o be_v not_o say_v he_o allude_v to_o s._n paul_n word_n teach_v of_o man_n 1_o galat._n 1_o neither_o by_o man_n that_o art_n of_o make_v godly_a song_n but_o receive_v from_o god_n that_o gift_n free_o and_o therefore_o he_o can_v make_v no_o wanton_a trifle_a or_o vain_a ditty_n but_o only_o such_o as_o pertein_v to_o godly_a religion_n and_o may_v seem_v to_o proceed_v of_o a_o head_n guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 24._o this_o divine_a poet_n cednom_n though_o he_o make_v many_o and_o sundry_a holy_a work_n have_v their_o whole_a argument_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o bede_n report_v yet_o never_o make_v he_o any_o piece_n of_o the_o service_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n thus_o the_o faith_n have_v continue_a in_o this_o land_n among_o the_o english_a people_n from_o the_o 14._o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n almost_o these_o thousand_o year_n service_n the_o first_o entry_n of_o the_o english_a service_n and_o until_o the_o late_a king_n edward_n time_n the_o english_a service_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o at_o least_o way_n never_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o public_a authority_n receive_v and_o use_v now_o touch_v the_o scripture_n by_o m._n juell_n and_o by_o all_o they_o of_o that_o side_n allege_v for_o the_o service_n to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n s._n paul_n treat_v of_o the_o use_n of_o tongue_n so_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n a_o special_a gift_n as_o the_o faithful_a folk_n come_v together_o to_o pray_v and_o to_o hear_v god_n word_n some_o one_o man_n sudden_o stand_v up_o and_o speak_v in_o the_o congregation_n with_o tongue_n of_o many_o nation_n spiritu_fw-la insusurrante_fw-la as_o chrysostom_n say_v that_o be_v by_o inspiration_n or_o prompt_v of_o the_o spirit_n so_o as_o neither_o other_o that_o be_v present_a neither_o himself_o after_o the_o opinion_n of_o chrysostome_n understand_v what_o he_o say_v that_o gift_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o forbid_v for_o that_o every_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o nothing_o by_o he_o do_v in_o vain_a but_o dehort_v the_o corinthian_n from_o the_o vain_a and_o ambitiouse_a use_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o do_v much_o extenuate_v the_o same_o and_o prefer_v prophesy_v that_o be_v the_o gift_n to_o interpret_v and_o expound_v scripture_n far_o before_o it_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o a_o very_a short_a while_n after_o they_o and_o that_o all_o together_o by_o miracle_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o worker_n of_o it_o tongue_n the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n make_v not_o for_o the_o service_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n as_o concern_v the_o order_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n and_o public_a service_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o have_v now_o and_o that_o age_n have_v not_o s._n paul_n mention_v nothing_o neither_o speah_v one_o word_n in_o that_o whole_a chapter_n but_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o miraculouse_a gift_n as_o be_v say_v before_o and_o therefore_o his_o say_n out_o of_o that_o chapter_n be_v not_o fit_o allege_v of_o m._n juell_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o manner_n of_o prayer_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n now_o receive_v and_o of_o long_a time_n use_v which_o in_o the_o west_n be_v utter_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n not_o by_o way_n of_o miracle_n or_o peculiar_a gift_n but_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n profectò_fw-la enim_fw-la coelum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tum_fw-la fuit_fw-la 37._o in_o 1._o cor._n 14._o ho._n 37._o in_o very_a deed_n say_v chrysostome_n the_o church_n than_o be_v a_o heaven_n
comprise_v within_o a_o great_a volume_n the_o recital_n of_o a_o few_o shall_v here_o geve_v a_o taste_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o whole_a and_o so_o suffice_v 3._o lib._n 3._o c._n 3._o irenaeus_n have_v much_o praise_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o length_n utter_v these_o word_n by_o which_o the_o soverainetie_n thereof_o be_v confess_v ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la omnem_fw-la convenire_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la undique_fw-la sunt_fw-la fideles_fw-la to_o this_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v necessary_a all_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o that_o be_v faithful_a any_o where_n to_o repair_v and_o come_v together_o for_o the_o mighty_a principality_n of_o the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n for_o that_o it_o be_v of_o great_a power_n and_o authority_n than_o other_o church_n and_o the_o principall_a of_o all_o androw_n follow_v our_o saviour_n before_o that_o peter_n do_v &_o tamen_fw-la primatum_fw-la non_fw-la accepit_fw-la andreas_n sed_fw-la petrus_n and_o yet_o androw_n receive_v not_o the_o primacy_n but_o peter_n 12._o in_o 2._o corinth_n 12._o say_v ambrose_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o egipte_n to_o liberius_n the_o pope_n in_o which_o they_o sue_v for_o help_v against_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o arianes_n we_o find_v these_o word_n huius_fw-la rei_fw-la gratia_fw-la universalis_fw-la vobis_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la jesu_fw-la commissa_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la etc_n even_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o universal_a church_n have_v be_v commit_v to_o you_o of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o you_o shall_v travail_v for_o all_o and_o not_o be_v negligent_a to_o help_v every_o one_o 11._o luc._n 11._o for_o while_o the_o strong_a man_n be_v arm_v keep_v his_o house_n all_o thing_n that_o he_o possess_v be_v in_o peace_n hilarius_n speak_v much_o to_o th'extol_v of_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n in_o that_o see_v say_v 6._o de_fw-fr trinita_n lib._n 6._o supereminentem_fw-la beatae_fw-la fidei_fw-la svae_fw-la confession_n locum_fw-la promeruit_fw-la 16._o matt._n 16._o that_o for_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o bless_a faith_n he_o deserve_v a_o place_n of_o preeminence_n above_o all_o other_o s._n ambros_n confess_v himself_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o largeness_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v by_o god_n providence_n prepare_v that_o the_o gospel_n may_v have_v his_o course_n and_o be_v spread_v abroad_o the_o better_a say_v thus_o of_o rome_n 6._o de_fw-fr vocatione_n gentium_fw-la li._n 2._o cap._n 6._o quae_fw-la tamen_fw-la per_fw-la apostolici_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la principatum_fw-la amplior_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la arce_fw-la religionis_fw-la quàm_fw-la solio_fw-la potestatis_fw-la which_o for_o all_o that_o have_v be_v advance_v more_o by_o the_o chiefty_a of_o the_o apostolic_a priesthood_n in_o the_o tower_n of_o religion_n then_o in_o the_o throne_n of_o temporal_a power_n saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o 162._o epistle_n say_v in_o ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la semper_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cathedrae_fw-la viguit_fw-la principatus_fw-la the_o primacy_n or_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chaier_n donatistas_n lib._n 1._o contra_fw-la 2._o epistolas_fw-la pelagianorum_n ad_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la cap._n 1._o quamuis_fw-la ipse_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la preemi●_n celsiore_fw-la fastigio_fw-la speculae_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la lib._n 2._o de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la contrà_fw-la donatistas_n have_v evermore_o be_v in_o force_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o same_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v to_o bonifacius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o care_n say_v he_o complain_v of_o the_o pelagian_n be_v common_a to_o we_o all_o that_o have_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n albeit_o it_o therein_o thou_o thyself_o have_v the_o preeminence_n over_o all_o be_v on_o the_o top_n of_o the_o pastoral_a watchetower_n in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o have_v these_o word_n caeterum_fw-la magis_fw-la vereri_fw-la debeo_fw-la ne_fw-la in_o petrum_fw-la contumeliosus_fw-la existam_fw-la quis_fw-la enim_fw-la nescit_fw-la illum_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la principatum_fw-la cuilibet_fw-la episcopatui_fw-la praeferendum_fw-la but_o i_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v afraid_a lest_o i_o be_v reproachful_a toward_o peter_n for_o who_o be_v he_o that_o know_v not_o that_o that_o principality_n of_o apostleship_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o any_o bishopric_n that_o be_v an_o other_o most_o evident_a place_n he_o have_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la 17._o cap._n 17._o ad_fw-la honoratum_fw-la cum_fw-la tantum_fw-la auxilium_fw-la dei_fw-la etc_n whereas_o say_v he_o we_o see_v so_o great_a help_n of_o god_n so_o great_a profit_n and_o fruit_n shall_v we_o stand_v in_o doubt_n whether_o we_o may_v hide_v ourselves_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o that_o church_n which_o though_o heretic_n bark_v at_o it_o in_o vain_a round_o about_o condemn_v partly_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o people_n themselves_o luciferianos_fw-la culmen_fw-la auctoritatis_fw-la obtinuit_fw-la cui_fw-la primas_fw-la dare_v nolle_fw-la vel_fw-la summae_fw-la profecto_fw-la impietatis_fw-la est_fw-la vel_fw-la praecipitis_fw-la arrogantiae_fw-la contrà_fw-la luciferianos_fw-la partly_o by_o the_o sadness_n of_o council_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o majesty_n of_o miracle_n even_o to_o the_o confession_n of_o mankind_n from_o the_o apostolic_a see_v by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n have_v obtain_v the_o top_n or_o high_a degree_n of_o authority_n to_o which_o church_n if_o we_o will_v not_o geve_v and_o grant_v the_o primacy_n sooth_o it_o be_v a_o point_n either_o of_o most_o high_a wickedness_n or_o of_o headlong_a arrogancy_n the_o notable_a say_n of_o s._n hierome_n may_v not_o be_v let_v pass_v ecclesiae_fw-la salus_fw-la à_fw-la summi_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la pendet_fw-la cvi_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la exhort_v quaedam_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la eminens_fw-la detur_fw-la potestas_fw-la tot_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la efficientur_fw-la schismata_fw-la quot_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n hang_v of_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n he_o mean_v the_o pope_n peter_n successor_n to_o who_o if_o there_o be_v not_o give_v a_o power_n peerless_a and_o surmont_v all_o other_o in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v have_v so_o many_o schism_n as_o there_o be_v priest_n there_o be_v a_o epistle_n of_o theodoritus_n bishop_n of_o cyrus_n extant_a in_fw-la greke_n write_v to_o leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n wherein_o we_o find_v a_o worthy_a witness_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a his_o word_n may_v thus_o be_v english_v if_o paul_n say_v he_o the_o preacher_n of_o truth_n and_o trumpet_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n run_v to_o peter_n to_o bring_v from_o he_o a_o determination_n and_o declaration_n for_o they_o who_o at_o antioch_n be_v in_o argument_n and_o contention_n concern_v lyve_a after_o moses_n law_n much_o more_o we_o who_o be_v but_o small_a and_o vile_a shall_v run_v unto_o your_o throne_n apostolic_a that_o of_o you_o we_o may_v have_v salve_n for_o the_o sore_n of_o the_o church_n there_o follow_v these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d id_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la omne_fw-la enim_fw-la vobis_fw-la convenit_fw-la primas_fw-la tenere_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_z 5_z proufe_v reason_n for_o in_o all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o faith_n or_o religion_n so_o he_o mean_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o you_o have_v the_o chief_a doing_n or_o that_o you_o have_v the_o primacy_n for_o your_o high_a seat_n or_o throne_n be_v endue_v with_o many_o prerogative_n and_o privilege_n now_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o this_o chief_a authority_n may_v be_v find_v necessary_a by_o reason_n that_o a_o multitude_n which_o be_v in_o itself_o one_o can_v not_o continewe_v one_o onlesse_a it_o be_v contain_v and_o hold_v in_o by_o one_o both_o learned_a philosopher_n have_v declare_v and_o the_o common_a nature_n of_o thing_n teach_v for_o every_o multitude_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n go_v a_o sunder_o in_o to_o many_o and_o from_o a_o other_o it_o come_v that_o it_o be_v one_o and_o that_o it_o continew_v one_o and_o that_o whereof_o it_o be_v one_o and_o be_v keep_v in_o union_n or_o oneness_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o be_v one_o else_o that_o self_n also_o shall_v need_v the_o help_n of_o a_o other_o that_o it_o be_v one_o for_o which_o cause_n that_o say_n of_o homer_n be_v allege_v by_o aristotle_n as_o most_o notable_a it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o have_v many_o ruler_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v one_o be_v ruler_n whereby_o be_v mean_v that_o plurality_n of_o sovereign_a ruler_n be_v not_o fit_n to_o contain_v and_o keep_v unity_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o subject_n therefore_o since_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o for_o as_o there_o be_v one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o call_v so_o there_o be_v one_o church_n yea_o all_o we_o be_v one_o body_n and_o membre_n one_o of_o a_o other_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v and_o in_o our_o crede_fw-la we_o all_o profess_v to_o
of_o the_o scripture_n the_o common_a people_n may_v read_v for_o their_o conforte_n and_o necessary_a instruction_n and_o by_o who_o the_o same_o may_v be_v translate_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n have_v already_o condemn_v all_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n of_o late_a year_n for_o that_o they_o be_v find_v in_o sundry_a place_n erroneous_a and_o partial_a in_o favour_n of_o the_o heresy_n which_o the_o translatour_n maineteine_v and_o it_o have_v not_o only_o in_o our_o time_n condemn_v these_o late_a translation_n but_o also_o hitherto_o never_o allow_v those_o few_o of_o old_a tyme._n i_o mean_v s._n hieromes_n translation_n into_o the_o dalmaticall_a tongue_n if_o ever_o any_o such_o be_v by_o he_o make_v as_o to_o some_o it_o seem_v a_o thing_n not_o sufficient_o prove_v and_o that_o which_o before_o s._n hierome_n vlphilas_o a_o arian_n bishop_n make_v and_o commend_v to_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o goth_n who_o first_o invent_v letter_n for_o they_o and_o propon_v the_o scripture_n to_o they_o translate_v into_o their_o own_o tongue_n and_o the_o better_a to_o bring_v his_o ambassade_n to_o the_o emperor_n valens_n to_o good_a effect_n be_v persuade_v by_o the_o heretic_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o the_o court_n there_o to_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o arian_n make_v promise_n also_o to_o travail_v in_o bryng_v the_o people_n of_o his_o country_n to_o the_o same_o sect_n which_o at_o length_n he_o perform_v most_o wicked_o as_o for_o the_o church_n of_o this_o land_n of_o britain_n the_o faith_n have_v continue_a in_o it_o thirten_v hundred_o year_n until_o now_o of_o late_a without_o have_v the_o bible_n translate_v into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n to_o be_v use_v of_o all_o in_o common_a our_o lord_n grant_v we_o yield_v no_o worse_a soul_n to_o god_n now_o have_v the_o scripture_n in_o our_o own_o tongue_n and_o talk_v so_o much_o of_o the_o gospel_n than_o our_o ancestor_n have_v do_v before_o us._n this_o island_n say_v beda_n speak_v of_o the_o estate_n the_o church_n be_v in_o at_o his_o day_n at_o this_o present_a according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o book_n that_o god_n law_n be_v write_v in_o do_v serche_n and_o confess_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o knowledge_n of_o the_o high_a truth_n and_o of_o the_o true_a hight_v with_o the_o tongue_n of_o five_o nation_n of_o the_o english_a the_o briton_n the_o scot_n the_o pighte_v and_o the_o latin_n quae_fw-la meditatione_n scripturorum_fw-la caeteris_fw-la omnibus_fw-la est_fw-la facta_fw-la communis_fw-la which_o tongue_n of_o the_o latin_n say_v he_o be_v for_o the_o study_n and_o meditation_n of_o the_o scripture_n make_v common_a to_o all_o the_o other_o very_o as_o the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v then_o common_a to_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o this_o land_n be_v of_o distincte_n language_n for_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o beda_n report_v so_o the_o same_o only_o have_v always_o until_o our_o time_n be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o cowntry_n and_o nation_n of_o the_o occidental_a or_o west_n church_n for_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o thereof_o it_o have_v be_v call_v the_o latin_a church_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v they_o that_o show_v they_o self_n so_o earnest_a and_o zealous_a for_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o all_o vulgar_a and_o barbarous_a tongue_n it_o behove_v they_o after_o the_o opinion_n of_o wise_a man_n to_o see_v first_o that_o no_o fault_n be_v find_v in_o their_o translation_n as_o hitherto_o many_o have_v be_v find_v and_o a_o small_a fault_n commit_v in_o the_o handle_n of_o god_n word_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o great_a crime_n next_o that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o such_o translation_n perteine_a to_o all_o christian_a people_n they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o every_o language_n and_o commend_v to_o the_o layetie_n by_o the_o wisdom_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o clergy_n have_v charge_n of_o their_o soul_n furthermore_o that_o there_o be_v some_o choice_n exception_n and_o limitation_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n and_o also_o of_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n after_o the_o discrete_a ordinance_n of_o the_o jew_n amongst_o who_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v read_v certain_a part_n of_o the_o bible_n before_o he_o have_v fullfil_v the_o time_n of_o the_o priestly_a ministry_n which_o be_v the_o age_n of_o thirty_o year_n ezechielem_fw-la praefatione_fw-la in_o ezechielem_fw-la as_o s._n hierome_n witness_v last_o that_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o common_a language_n be_v not_o commend_v to_o the_o people_n as_o a_o thing_n utter_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n lest_o thereby_o they_o condemn_v so_o many_o church_n that_o hitherto_o have_v lack_v the_o same_o and_o so_o many_o learned_a and_o godly_a father_n that_o have_v not_o procure_v it_o for_o their_o flock_n final_o all_o that_o have_v go_v before_o we_o to_o who_o in_o all_o virtue_n innocence_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v as_o for_o i_o in_o as_o much_o as_o this_o matter_n be_v not_o yet_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n whether_o the_o common_a people_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n to_o read_v and_o to_o hear_v or_o no_o i_o define_v nothing_o as_o i_o esteem_v great_o all_o godly_a and_o wholesome_a knowledge_n and_o wish_v the_o people_n have_v more_o of_o it_o than_o they_o have_v with_o charity_n and_o meekness_n so_o i_o will_v that_o these_o hot_a talker_n of_o god_n word_n have_v less_o of_o that_o knowledge_n which_o make_v a_o man_n to_o swell_v and_o to_o be_v proud_a in_o his_o own_o conceit_n and_o that_o they_o will_v deep_o weigh_v with_o themselves_o whether_o they_o be_v not_o contain_v within_o the_o lyste_n of_o the_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 8._o 1._o cor._n 8._o if_o any_o man_n think_v that_o he_o know_v any_o thing_n he_o know_v nothing_o yet_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v god_n grant_v all_o our_o knowledge_n be_v so_o join_v with_o meekness_n humility_n and_o charity_n as_o that_o be_v not_o just_o say_v of_o we_o which_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o like_a case_n say_v very_o dreadful_o to_o his_o dear_a friend_n alipius_n surgunt_fw-la indocti_fw-la &_o coelum_fw-la rapiunt_fw-la 8_o confess_v lib._n 8._o ca._n 8_o &_o nos_fw-la cum_fw-la doctrinis_fw-la nostris_fw-la sine_fw-la cord_n ecce_fw-la ubi_fw-la volutamur_fw-la in_o carne_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la the_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a arise_v up_o and_o catch_v heaven_n away_o from_o we_o and_o we_o with_o all_o our_o great_a learning_n voyed_z of_o heart_n lo_o where_o be_v we_o wallow_v in_o flesh_n and_o blood_n or_o that_o it_o be_v then_o lawful_a for_o the_o priest_n juell_n juell_n to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n close_o and_o in_o silence_n to_o himself_o of_o secret_a pronounce_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n article_n xvi_n the_o matter_n of_o this_o article_n be_v neither_o one_o of_o the_o high_a mystery_n nor_o one_o of_o the_o great_a key_n of_o our_o religion_n how_o so_o ever_o master_n juell_n please_v himself_o with_o that_o report_n think_v thereby_o to_o impair_v the_o estimation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o diversity_n of_o observation_n in_o this_o behalf_n show_v the_o indifferency_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o else_o if_o one_o manner_n of_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n have_v be_v think_v a_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n it_o have_v be_v every_o where_o uniform_a and_o invariable_a that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n pronounce_v by_o the_o priest_n as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n by_o virtue_n of_o which_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n this_o thing_n have_v in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o with_o consent_n of_o all_o invariable_o be_v do_v and_o so_o beleve_v but_o the_o manner_n of_o pronounce_v the_o word_n concern_v silence_n or_o open_a utteraunce_n according_a to_o diversity_n of_o place_n have_v be_v diverse_a eucharistiae_fw-la the_o manner_n of_o pronounce_v the_o consecration_n in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n diverse_a in_o libello_fw-la de_fw-fr sacramento_n eucharistiae_fw-la the_o greek_n in_o the_o east_n church_n have_v think_v it_o good_a to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n clara_fw-la voce_fw-la as_o we_o find_v in_o chrysostom_n mass_n and_o as_o bessarion_n write_v alta_fw-la voce_fw-la that_o be_v plain_o out_o aloud_o or_o with_o aloud_o voice_n sacerdos_n alta_fw-la voce_fw-la iuxtà_fw-la orientalis_n ecclesiae_fw-la ritum_fw-la verba_fw-la illa_fw-la pronunciat_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la
corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la quod_fw-la comedetur_fw-la resuscitabo_fw-la eum_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la alius_fw-la ipse_fw-la est_fw-la quàm_fw-la caro_fw-la sva_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o that_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n have_v life_n everlasting_a for_o this_o flesh_n have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o natural_o be_v life_n therefore_o say_v he_o that_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o in_o the_o last_o day_n for_o i_o quoth_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v eat_v shall_v raise_v he_o up_o again_o for_o he_o be_v no_o other_o than_o his_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n no_o man_n more_o express_o call_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n then_o s._n bernard_n in_o his_o godly_a sermon_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la presbyterum_fw-la where_o he_o say_v thus_o comedunt_fw-la angeli_fw-la verbum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la natum_fw-la comedunt_fw-la homines_fw-la verbum_fw-la foenum_fw-la factum_fw-la the_o angel_n eat_v the_o word_n bear_v of_o god_n man_n eat_v the_o word_n make_v have_v mean_v hereby_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o call_v the_o word_n make_v have_v that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o word_n incarnate_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n there_o he_o say_v haec_fw-la est_fw-la verè_fw-la indulgentia_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la verè_fw-la cumulata_fw-la gratia_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la verè_fw-la superexcellens_fw-la gloria_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la deum_fw-la suum_fw-la tenere_fw-la &_o alijs_fw-la dando_fw-la porrigere_fw-la this_o be_v very_o a_o heavenly_a gift_n this_o be_v very_o a_o bountiful_a grace_n this_o be_v very_o a_o pass_v excellent_a glory_n the_o priest_n to_o hold_v his_o god_n and_o in_o geve_v to_o reach_v he_o forth_o to_o other_o in_o the_o same_o sermon_n speak_v of_o the_o marvellous_a sweetness_n that_o good_a bishope_n and_o holy_a religiouse_a man_n have_v experience_n of_o by_o receive_v this_o bless_a sacrament_n he_o say_v thus_o ideo_fw-la ad_fw-la mensam_fw-la altaris_fw-la frequentius_fw-la accedunt_fw-la omni_fw-la tempore_fw-la candida_fw-la facientes_fw-la vestimenta_fw-la sva_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la corpora_fw-la prout_fw-la possunt_fw-la melius_fw-la utpote_fw-la deum_fw-la suum_fw-la manu_fw-la &_o ore_fw-la contrectaturi_fw-la for_o this_o cause_n they_o come_v the_o often_o unto_o the_o board_n of_o the_o altar_n at_o all_o time_n make_v their_o garment_n that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o body_n so_o white_a as_o they_o can_v possible_o as_o they_o who_o shall_v handle_v their_o god_n with_o hand_n and_o mowth_n an_o other_o place_n of_o the_o same_o sermon_n for_o that_o it_o contain_v a_o wholesome_a instruction_n beside_o the_o affirm_v of_o our_o purpose_n i_o can_v not_o omit_v i_o remit_v the_o learned_a to_o the_o latin_a the_o english_a of_o it_o be_v this_o they_o be_v marvelous_a thing_n brethren_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o this_o sacrament_n faith_n be_v necessary_a knowledge_n of_o reason_n be_v here_o superfluous_a this_o let_v faith_n believe_v let_v not_o understanding_n require_v lest_o that_o either_o not_o be_v find_v it_o think_v it_o incredible_a or_o be_v find_v out_o it_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v singular_a and_o alone_a and_o therefore_o it_o behove_v it_o to_o be_v beleve_v symp_o that_o can_v not_o be_v search_v out_o profitable_o wherefore_o serche_n not_o serche_n not_o how_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_n not_o whether_o it_o be_v come_v not_o unto_o it_o unreverent_o lest_o it_o be_v to_o you_o to_o death_n deus_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la &_o quanquàm_fw-la panis_fw-la mysteria_fw-la habeat_fw-la mutatur_fw-la tamen_fw-la in_o carnem_fw-la for_o it_o be_v god_n and_o thoug_a it_o have_v mystery_n of_o bread_n yet_o be_v it_o change_v into_o flesh_n god_n and_o man_n it_o be_v that_o witness_v bread_n true_o to_o be_v make_v his_o flesh_n the_o vessel_n of_o election_n it_o be_v 11._o 1._o cor._n 11._o that_o threaten_v judgement_n to_o he_o that_o put_v no_o difference_n in_o judge_v of_o that_o so_o holy_a flesh_n the_o self_n same_o thing_n think_v thou_o o_o christian_a man_n of_o the_o wine_n geve_v that_o honour_n to_o the_o wine_n the_o creator_n of_o wine_n it_o be_v that_o promote_v the_o wine_n to_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n this_o far_o holy_a bernard_n here_o let_v our_o adversary_n touch_v this_o article_n consider_v and_o weigh_v with_o themselves_o whether_o they_o be_v lutheran_n zuinglianes_n or_o genevians_n what_o english_a they_o can_v make_v of_o these_o word_n use_v by_o the_o father_n and_o apply_v to_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v dominus_fw-la christus_fw-la ▪_o divina_fw-la essentia_fw-la deus_fw-la seipsum_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la ego_fw-la verbum_fw-la foenum_fw-la factum_fw-la deum_fw-la suum_fw-la the_o number_n of_o the_o like_a place_n that_o may_v be_v allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n be_v in_o manner_n infinite_a yet_o m._n juell_n promyse_v to_o geve_v over_o and_o subscribe_v if_o any_o one_o may_v be_v find_v now_o we_o shall_v see_v what_o truth_n be_v in_o his_o word_n in_o the_o weigh_v of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n little_a occasion_n of_o wicked_a scoff_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n shall_v remain_v to_o they_o that_o be_v not_o blind_v with_o that_o gross_a and_o fond_a error_n that_o deny_v the_o inseparabilitie_n of_o christ_n but_o affirm_v in_o this_o mystery_n to_o be_v present_a his_o flesh_n only_o with_o out_o blood_n soul_n and_o godhead_n which_o be_v confute_v by_o plain_a scripture_n christ_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a now_o die_v no_o more_o rom._n 6._o he_o suffer_v himself_o no_o more_o to_o be_v divide_v 1._o cor._n 1._o every_o spirit_n that_o lose_v jesus_n this_o be_v antichrist_n 1._o joan._n 4._o hereof_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o christ_n be_v very_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v other_o where_o sufficient_o prove_v then_o be_v he_o there_o entire_a and_o whole_a flesh_n blood_n and_o soul_n whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n for_o the_o inseparable_a union_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n which_o matter_n be_v more_o ample_o declare_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v then_o teach_v to_o believe_v juell_n juell_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n remain_v there_o with_o out_o corruption_n of_o the_o remain_a of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n be_v entire_a and_o whole_a article_n xxii_n these_o five_o article_n here_o follow_v be_v school_n point_n the_o discussion_n whereof_o be_v more_o curiouse_a then_o necessary_a whether_o the_o faithful_a people_n be_v then_o that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o space_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n teach_v to_o believe_v concern_v this_o bless_a sacrament_n precise_o according_a to_o the_o purporte_n of_o all_o these_o article_n or_o no_o i_o know_v not_o very_o i_o think_v they_o be_v teach_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o matter_n simple_o and_o plain_o yet_o so_o as_o nothing_o be_v hide_v from_o they_o that_o in_o those_o quiet_a time_n quiet_a i_o mean_v touch_v this_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v think_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o know_v if_o sithence_o there_o have_v be_v more_o teach_v or_o rather_o if_o the_o truth_n have_v in_o some_o other_o form_n of_o word_n be_v declare_v for_o a_o more_o evidence_n and_o clearness_n in_o this_o behalf_n to_o be_v have_v truth_n itself_o always_o remain_v one_o this_o have_v procee_v of_o the_o diligence_n and_o earnest_a care_n of_o the_o church_n to_o repress_v the_o pertinacie_n of_o heretic_n who_o have_v within_o these_o last_o syx_n hundred_o year_n impugn_a the_o truth_n herein_o and_o to_o meet_v with_o their_o perverse_a and_o froward_a objection_n as_o have_v be_v think_v necessary_a to_o find_v out_o such_o wedge_n as_o may_v best_o serve_v to_o ryve_v such_o knotty_a blocket_n yet_o this_o matter_n have_v not_o so_o much_o be_v teach_v in_o open_a audience_n of_o the_o people_n as_o debate_v private_o between_o learned_a man_n in_o school_n and_o so_o of_o they_o set_v forth_o in_o their_o private_a write_n wherein_o if_o some_o perhaps_o through_o contention_n of_o wit_n have_v be_v either_o over_o curiouse_a or_o over_o bold_a and_o have_v overshotte_v the_o mark_n or_o not_o sufficient_o confirm_v the_o point_n they_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o treat_v of_o or_o through_o ignorance_n or_o favour_n of_o a_o part_n have_v in_o some_o thing_n swerve_v from_o reason_n or_o that_o meaning_n which_o holy_a church_n hold_v it_o be_v great_a uncourtesy_n to_o lay_v that_o to_o our_o charge_n to_o abuse_v their_o oversighte_n to_o our_o discredit_n and_o to_o reprove_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o a_o few_o now_o concern_v this_o article_n whether_o we_o be_v able_a to_o avouche_v it_o by_o such_o authority_n as_o m._n
affirm_v the_o catholic_n to_o have_v nothing_o for_o their_o part_n over_o partly_o as_o to_o sober_a wit_n it_o seem_v egg_v and_o provoke_v they_o to_o bring_v somewhat_o in_o their_o defence_n o_o merciful_a god_n 43._o juell_n in_o the_o sermon_n folio_n 43._o who_o will_v think_v there_o can_v be_v so_o much_o wilfulness_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n o_o gregory_n o_o augustine_n o_o hierome_n o_o chrysostome_n o_o leo_n o_o dionise_v o_o anacletus_fw-la o_o sistus_n o_o paul_n o_o christ_n if_o we_o be_v deceive_v herein_o you_o be_v they_o that_o have_v deceive_v us._n you_o have_v teach_v we_o those_o schism_n and_o division_n you_o have_v teach_v we_o these_o heresy_n thus_o you_o order_v the_o holy_a communion_n in_o your_o time_n the_o same_o we_o receive_v at_o your_o hand_n and_o have_v faithful_o delyver_v it_o unto_o the_o people_n and_o that_o you_o may_v the_o more_o meruel_a at_o the_o wilfulness_n of_o such_o man_n they_o stand_v this_o day_n against_o so_o many_o old_a father_n so_o many_o doctoures_fw-la so_o many_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o manifest_a and_o so_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o yet_o have_v they_o here_o in_o not_o one_o father_n not_o one_o doctor_n not_o one_o allow_v example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o make_v for_o they_o and_o when_o i_o say_v not_o one_o i_o speak_v not_o this_o in_o vehemency_n of_o spirit_n or_o heat_n of_o talk_n but_o even_o as_o before_o god_n by_o the_o way_n of_o simplicity_n and_o truth_n lest_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v happy_o be_v deceive_v and_o think_v there_o be_v more_o weight_n in_o the_o other_o side_n then_o in_o conclusion_n there_o shall_v be_v found_n and_o therefore_o once_o again_o i_o say_v of_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o all_o the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o all_o the_o old_a father_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctoures_fw-la in_o these_o cause_n they_o have_v not_o one_o here_o the_o matter_n itself_o that_o i_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n put_v i_o in_o remembrance_n of_o certain_a thing_n that_o i_o utter_v unto_o you_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n at_o my_o last_o be_v in_o this_o place_n i_o remember_v i_o lay_v o●●_n then_o here_o before_o you_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v n●w_o in_o controversy_n where_o unto_o our_o adversary_n will_v not_o yield_v and_o i_o say_v perhaps_o bold_o as_o it_o may_v then_o seem_v to_o sum_n man_n but_o as_o i_o myself_o and_o the_o learned_a of_o our_o adversary_n then selue_o do_v well_o know_v sincere_o and_o true_o that_o none_o of_o all_o they_o that_o this_o day_n stand_v against_o we_o be_v able_a or_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v against_o we_o any_o one_o of_o all_o these_o point_n either_o by_o the_o scripture_n or_o by_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o by_o the_o old_a ●o●●●●res_n or_o by_o the_o ancient_a general_a councel●●_n syn●●_n that_o time_n it_o have_v be_v report_v in_o place_n that_o i_o speak_v then_o more_o than_o i_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v and_o make_v good_a how_o be_v it_o these_o report_n be_v only_o make_v in_o corner_n and_o therefore_o ought_v the_o less_o to_o trouble_v i_o b●●_n if_o my_o say_n have_v be_v so_o weak_a and_o may_v so_o easy_o have_v than_o reprove_v i_o marvel_v that_o the_o pa●ie●_n never_o come_v to_o the_o light_n to_o take_v the_o advantage_n for_o my_o promise_n be_v and_o that_o open_o here_o before_o you_o all_o that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n i_o will_v yield_v and_o subscribe_v to_o he_o and_o he_o shall_v depart_v with_o the_o victory_n loath_a i_o be_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o rehearsal_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v speak_v afore_o and_o yet_o because_o the_o case_n so_o require_v i_o shall_v desire_v you_o that_o have_v all_o ready_a hear_v i_o to_o bear_v the_o more_o with_o i_o in_o this_o behalf_n better_o it_o be_v to_o trouble_v your_o ear_n with_o twice_o hear_v of_o one_o thing_n then_o to_o betray_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o word_n that_o i_o then_o speak_v as_o near_o as_o i_o can_v call_v they_o to_o mind_n be_v these_o if_o any_o learned_a man_n of_o all_o our_o adversary_n or_o if_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v alyve_a be_v able_a to_o bring_v any_o one_o sufficient_a sentence_n out_o of_o any_o old_a catholic_a doctor_n or_o father_n out_o of_o any_o old_a general_a council_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o god_n or_o any_o one_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v clear_o and_o plain_o prove_v ▪_o article_n 1_o that_o there_o be_v any_o private_a mass_n in_o the_o world_n at_o that_o time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o syxe_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n article_n 2_o or_o that_o there_o be_v then_o any_o communion_n minister_v unto_o the_o people_n under_o one_o kind_n article_n 3_o or_o that_o the_o people_n have_v their_o common_a prayer_n then_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n that_o they_o understand_v not_o article_n 4_o or_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o call_v a_o universal_a bishop_n or_o the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n article_n 5_z or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v then_o teach_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o substantial_o corporalli_n carnal_o or-natural_o in_o the_o sacrament_n article_n 6_o or_o that_o his_o body_n be_v or_o may_v be_v in_o a_o thousand_o place_n or_o mo_z at_o one_o time_n article_n 7_o or_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v then_o hold_v up_o the_o sacrament_n over_o his_o head_n article_n 8_o or_o that_o the_o people_n do_v then_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v it_o with_o godly_a honour_n article_n 9_o or_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v then_o or_o now_o aught_o to_o be_v hang_v up_o under_o a_o canopy_n article_n 10_o or_o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n there_o remain_v only_o the_o accident_n and_o show_n with_o out_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n article_n 11_o or_o that_o the_o priest_n then_o divyde_v the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n and_o afterward_o receive_v himself_o all_o alone_a article_n 12_o or_o that_o who_o so_o ever_o have_v say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n a_o pledge_n a_o token_n or_o a_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n have_v therefore_o be_v judge_v for_o a_o heretic_n article_n 13_o or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a then_o to_o have_v thirty_o xx.xu.x_fw-la or_o v._o mass_n say_v in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n article_n 14_o or_o that_o image_n be_v then_o set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o intent_n the_o people_n may_v worship_v they_o article_n 15_o or_o that_o the_z lie_z people_n be_v then_o forbid_a to_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n if_o any_o man_n a_o live_v be_v able_a to_o prove_v any_o of_o these_o article_n by_o any_o one_o clear_a or_o plain_a clause_n or_o sentence_n either_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o old_a doctoures_fw-la or_o of_o any_o old_a general_a council_n or_o by_o any_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n i_o promise_v then_o that_o i_o will_v geve_v over_o and_o subscribe_v unto_o he_o these_o word_n or_o the_o very_a like_o i_o remember_v i_o speak_v here_o open_o before_o you_o all_o and_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o sum_n man_n say_v i_o have_v speak_v and_o can_v not_o justify_v but_o i_o for_o my_o part_n will_v not_o only_o not_o call_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o then_o say_v be_v well_o assute_v of_o the_o truth_n there_o in_o but_o also_o will_v lay_v more_o matter_n to_o the_o same_o that_o if_o they_o that_o seek_v occasion_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o contrary_a they_o may_v have_v the_o large_a scope_n to_o reply_n against_o i_o wherefor_o beside_o all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v already_o i_o will_v say_v far_o and_o yet_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o may_v be_v say_v if_o any_o one_o of_o all_o our_o adversary_n be_v able_a clear_o and_o plain_o to_o prove_v by_o such_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o old_a doctoures_fw-la and_o council_n as_o i_o say_v before_o article_n 16_o that_o it_o be_v then_o lawful_a for_o the_o priest_n to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n close_o and_o in_o silence_n to_o himself_o article_n 17_o or_o that_o the_o priest_n have_v authority_n to_o offer_v up_o christ_n unto_o his_o father_n article_n 18_o or_o to_o communicate_v and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n for_o a_o other_o as_o they_o do_v article_n 19_o or_o to_o apply_v the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n to_o any_o man_n by_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o mass_n article_n 20_o
or_o that_o it_o be_v then_o think_v a_o sound_n doctrine_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n that_o the_o mass_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la that_o be_v even_o for_o that_o it_o be_v say_v and_o do_v be_v able_a to_o remove_v any_o part_n of_o our_o sin_n article_n 21_o or_o that_o then_o any_o christian_a man_n call_v the_o sacrament_n his_o lord_n and_o god_n article_n 22_o or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v then_o teach_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n remain_v there_o with_o out_o corruption_n article_n 23_o or_o that_o a_o mouse_n or_o any_o other_o worm_n or_o beast_n may_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n have_v say_v and_o teach_v article_n 24_o or_o that_o when_o christ_n say_v ho_o est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o word_n hoc_fw-la point_v not_o the_o bread_n but_o individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la as_o sum_n of_o they_o say_v article_n 25_o or_o that_o the_o accident_n or_o form_n or_o show_n of_o bread_n and_o wyne_fw-mi be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o not_o rather_o the_o very_a bread_n and_o wyne_fw-mi itself_o article_n 26_o or_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n or_o token_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o lie_v hide_v underneathe_o it_o article_n 27_o or_o that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o cause_n of_o true_a devotion_n and_o obedience_n these_o be_v the_o high_a mystery_n and_o great_a key_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o with_o out_o they_o their_o doctrine_n can_v never_o be_v maintain_v and_o stand_v upright_o if_o any_o one_o of_o all_o our_o adversary_n be_v able_a to_o avouch_v any_o one_o of_o all_o these_o article_n by_o any_o such_o sufficient_a authority_n of_o scripture_n doctoures_fw-la or_o council_n as_o i_o have_v require_v as_o i_o say_v before_o so_o say_v i_o now_o again_o i_o be_o content_a to_o yield_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o subscribe_v but_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a true_o to_o allege_v one_o sentence_n and_o because_o i_o know_v it_o therefore_o i_o speak_v it_o lest_o you_o happy_o shall_v be_v deceive_v they_o that_o have_v avaunt_v themselves_o of_o doctoures_fw-la and_o council_n and_o continuance_n of_o time_n in_o any_o of_o these_o point_n 51._o fol._n 51._o when_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o trial_n to_o show_v their_o proof_n they_o shall_v open_v their_o hand_n and_o find_v nothing_o i_o speak_v not_o this_o of_o arrogancy_n thou_o lord_n know_a it_n best_o that_o know_a all_o thing_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v god_n cause_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v do_v god_n great_a injury_n if_o i_o shall_v conceal_v it_o the_o word_n of_o master_n the_o same_o challenge_n and_o offer_n and_o impute_v to_o the_o catholic_n of_o unhablenes_n to_o defend_v their_o doctrine_n utter_v by_o m._n juell_n in_o other_o place_n of_o his_o book_n as_o follow_v my_o offer_n be_v this_o he_o mean_v in_o the_o sermon_n which_o he_o make_v in_o the_o court_n that_o if_o any_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n that_o i_o then_o rehearse_v 4._o in_o the_o first_o answer_n to_o d._n coles_n letter_n fol._n 4._o can_v be_v prove_v of_o your_o side_n by_o any_o sufficient_a authority_n other_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o ancient_a council_n or_o by_o any_o one_o allow_v example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o then_o i_o will_v be_v content_a to_o yield_v unto_o you_o i_o say_v you_o have_v none_o of_o all_o those_o help_n nor_o scripture_n nor_o council_n nor_o doctor_n neither_o any_o other_o antiquity_n and_o this_o be_v the_o negative_a now_o it_o stand_v you_o upon_o to_o prove_v but_o one_o affirmative_a to_o the_o contrary_a and_o so_o to_o require_v my_o promise_n the_o article_n that_o i_o say_v can_v not_o be_v prove_v of_o your_o part_n be_v these_o that_o it_o can_v not_o appear_v by_o any_o authority_n other_o of_o the_o old_a doctor_n or_o of_o the_o ancient_a council_n that_o there_o be_v any_o private_a mass_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n at_o that_o time_n or_o that_o there_o be_v then_o any_o communion_n minister_v etc_n the_o article_n reken_v there_o it_o follow_v and_o if_o any_o one_o of_o all_o these_o article_n can_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o such_o atuhoritie_n as_o i_o have_v say_v 5._o fol._n 5._o and_o as_o you_o have_v bear_v the_o people_n in_o hand_n you_o can_v prove_v they_o by_o i_o be_o well_o content_a to_o stand_v to_o my_o promise_n 7._o after_o in_o the_o first_o answer_n to_o d._n c._n fol._n 6._o in_o the_o end_n there_o fol._n 7._o i_o think_v it_o best_a to_o make_v my_o entry_n with_o such_o thing_n as_o where_o in_o i_o be_v well_o assure_v you_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o find_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o colour_n at_o all_o but_o to_o conclude_v as_o i_o begin_v i_o answer_n that_o in_o these_o article_n i_o hold_v only_o the_o negative_a and_o therefore_o i_o look_v how_o you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o as_o i_o say_v afore_o by_o sufficient_a authority_n which_o if_o you_o do_v not_o you_o shall_v cause_v i_o the_o more_o to_o be_v resolve_v and_o other_o to_o stand_v the_o more_o in_o doubt_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o learning_n in_o my_o sermon_n at_o paul_n and_o else_o where_o i_o require_v you_o to_o bring_v forth_o on_o your_o part_n either_o sum_n scripture_n 13_o sn_a the_o second_o answer_n to_o d._n c._n foe_n 13_o or_o sum_n old_a doctor_n or_o sum_n ancient_a council_n or_o else_o some_o allow_v example_n of_o the_o primive_a churchen_n for_o these_o be_v good_a grownde_n to_o buyld_v upon_o and_o i_o will_v have_v marvel_v that_o you_o bring_v nothing_o all_o this_o while_n save_v that_o i_o know_v you_o have_v nothing_o to_o bring_v as_o true_o as_o god_n be_v god_n if_o you_o will_v have_v vouchesave_v to_o follow_v either_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n 15._o in_o the_o 2._o answer_n fol._n 15._o and_o council_n you_o will_v never_o have_v restore_v again_o the_o supmmacie_n of_o rome_n after_o it_o be_v once_o abolish_v or_o the_o private_a mass_n or_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n etc_n now_o if_o you_o think_v you_o have_v wrong_a 17._o there_o fol._n 17._o show_v your_o evidence_n out_o of_o the_o doctor_n the_o counsel_n or_o scripture_n that_o you_o may_v have_v your_o right_n and_o re-enter_v i_o require_v you_o to_o no_o great_a pain_n one_o good_a sentence_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a you_o will_v have_v your_o private_a mass_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n supmmacie_n the_o come_v prayer_n in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n 18._o fol._n 18._o and_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o you_o have_v make_v no_o small_a a_o do_v i_o think_v it_o reasonable_a you_o bring_v some_o one_o authority_n beside_o your_o own_o to_o avouche_v the_o same_o with_o all_o you_o have_v make_v the_o unlearned_a people_n believe_v you_o have_v all_o the_o doctor_n all_o the_o council_n and_o fiften_v hundred_o year_n on_o your_o side_n for_o your_o credit_n sake_n let_v not_o all_o these_o great_a vaunt_n come_v to_o naught_o you_o desire_v you_o may_v not_o be_v put_v of_o 18._o fol._n 18._o but_o that_o your_o suit_n may_v be_v considere_v and_o yet_o this_o half_a year_n long_o i_o have_v desire_v of_o you_o and_o of_o your_o brethren_n but_o one_o sentence_n and_o still_o i_o know_v not_o how_o i_o be_o cast_v of_o and_o can_v gete_v nothing_o at_o your_o hand_n you_o call_v for_o the_o special_a proof_n of_o our_o doctrine_n 21._o fol._n 21._o which_o will_v require_v a_o whole_a book_n where_o as_o if_o you_o of_o your_o part_n can_v vouchsafe_v to_o bring_v but_o two_o line_n the_o whole_a matter_n be_v conclude_v we_o only_o tell_v the_o people_n as_o our_o dewtie_n be_v that_o you_o withstand_v the_o manifest_a truth_n and_o yet_o have_v neither_o doctor_n nor_o council_n nor_o scripture_n for_o you_o and_o that_o you_o have_v show_v such_o extremity_n as_o the_o like_a have_v not_o be_v see_v and_o now_o can_v give_v no_o reken_v why_o or_o if_o you_o can_v let_v it_o appear_v 23._o fol._n 23._o you_o be_v bownde_n you_o say_v and_o may_v not_o dispute_v etc_n but_o i_o will_v wish_v the_o queens_n majesty_n will_v not_o only_o set_v you_o at_o liberty_n in_o that_o behalf_n but_o also_o command_v you_o to_o show_v your_o grownde_n where_o as_o you_o say_v you_o will_v have_v the_o sainge_n of_o both_o party_n weigh_v by_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o old_a doctor_n you_o see_v that_o be_v our_o only_a request_n and_o that_o in_o the_o matter_n you_o write_v of_o i_o
only_o but_o as_o one_o sure_a of_o the_o victory_n before_o proufe_v of_o fight_n cast_v your_o glove_n as_o it_o be_v and_o with_o strange_a defiance_n provoke_v all_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v a_o live_v to_o camp_n with_o you_o now_o if_o this_o matter_n shall_v so_o fall_v out_o as_o thoverthrowe_v appear_v evident_o on_o our_o side_n and_o the_o victory_n on_o you_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n if_o we_o can_v not_o bring_v one_o sentence_n for_o proufe_v of_o any_o one_o of_o all_o these_o article_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n ancient_a council_n doctor_n or_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o wise_a and_o grave_a man_n i_o suppose_v will_v have_v like_v you_o better_o if_o you_o have_v meek_o and_o sober_o report_v the_o truth_n for_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a and_o simple_a so_o it_o need_v not_o to_o be_v set_v forth_o with_o brag_n of_o high_a word_n you_o remember_v that_o old_a say_n of_o the_o wise_a simplex_n veritatis_fw-la oratio_fw-la the_o utteraunce_n of_o truth_n ought_v to_o be_v simple_a but_o if_o the_o victory_n loath_a i_o be_o to_o use_v this_o insolent_a word_n be_v it_o not_o to_o follow_v the_o metaphor_n which_o your_o challenge_n have_v dryven_v i_o unto_o fall_v to_o our_o side_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o we_o shalle_v be_v able_a to_o allege_v some_o one_o sufficient_a sentence_n for_o proufe_v of_o some_o one_o of_o all_o these_o article_n yea_o if_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o allege_v diverse_a and_o sundry_a sentence_n place_n and_o authority_n for_o confirmation_n of_o sundry_a these_o article_n in_o this_o case_n i_o ween_v you_o shall_v hardly_o escape_v among_o sober_a man_n the_o reproach_n of_o rashness_n among_o humble_a man_n of_o presumption_n among_o godly_a man_n of_o wickedness_n of_o rashness_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o rash_a then_o in_o so_o weighty_a matter_n as_o some_o of_o these_o article_n import_v so_o bold_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o contrary_a where_o of_o may_v sufficient_o be_v prove_v of_o presumption_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o presumptuouse_a then_o in_o matter_n by_o you_o not_o thorough_o see_v and_o weigh_v to_o impute_v ignorance_n and_o unablenes_n to_o avouche_v thing_n approve_v and_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n to_o all_o learned_a man_n a_o live_v of_o wickedness_n for_o what_o be_v more_o wicked_a then_o the_o former_a case_n stand_v so_o to_o remove_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n from_o devotion_n so_o to_o bring_v the_o church_n in_o to_o contempt_n so_o to_o set_v at_o nought_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o you_o follow_v the_o new_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n of_o theodorus_n beza_n and_o peter_n martyr_n the_o prolocutour_n of_o the_o caluinian_a church_n in_o france_n who_o scolar_n a_o long_a time_n you_o have_v be_v so_o you_o diverte_v far_o from_o that_o prudencie_n sobriety_n and_o modesty_n which_o in_o their_o owtward_a demeanour_n they_o show_v in_o that_o solemn_a and_o honourable_a assemble_v at_o poyssi_n in_o september_n 1561._o as_o it_o appare_v by_o the_o oration_n which_o beza_n pronunce_v there_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o caluiniste_n in_o which_o oration_n with_o humble_a and_o often_o protestation_n they_o submit_v themselves_o if_o cause_n shall_v so_o appear_v to_o better_a advice_n and_o judgement_n as_o thoug_a they_o may_v be_v deceive_v utter_v these_o and_o the_o like_a word_n in_o sundry_a place_n if_o we_o be_v deceive_v we_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o know_v it_o item_n for_o the_o small_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o impart_v unto_o we_o it_o seem_v that_o this_o transubstantiation_n etc_n item_n if_o we_o be_v not_o deceive_v item_n in_o case_n we_o be_v decive_v we_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o understand_v it_o etc_n but_o you_o master_n juell_n as_o though_o you_o have_v read_v all_o that_o ever_o have_v be_v write_v in_o these_o point_n and_o have_v bear_v a_o way_n all_o that_o ever-hath_a be_v teach_v and_o be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o touch_v the_o same_o and_o none_o other_o beside_o you_o have_v see_v aught_o and_o be_v able_a to_o say_v aught_o say_v marvellous_a confident_o and_o that_o in_o the_o most_o honourable_a and_o frequent_a audience_n of_o this_o realm_n that_o you_o be_v well_o assure_v that_o none_o of_o your_o learned_a adversary_n no_o north_n all_o the_o learned_a man_n a_o live_v shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v one_o sentence_n for_o any_o one_o of_o these_o article_n 49_o in_o the_o sermon_n fol._n 49_o and_o that_o because_o you_o know_v it_o therefore_o you_o speak_v it_o least_o happy_o your_o hearer_n shall_v be_v deceive_v likewise_o in_o your_o answer_n to_o doctor_n coles_n first_o letter_n you_o say_v speak_v of_o these_o article_n you_o think_v it_o best_a to_o make_v your_o entre_fw-fr in_o your_o preach_n with_o such_o thing_n 6._o folly_n 6._o as_o where_o in_o you_o be_v well_o assure_v we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o find_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o colour_n or_o shadow_n of_o doctor_n at_o all_o where_o in_o you_o withdraw_v yourself_o from_o plainness_n so_o much_o as_o you_o do_v in_o your_o presumptuouse_a challenge_n from_o modesty_n for_o be_v demand_v of_o d._n cole_n why_o you_o treat_v not_o rather_o of_o matter_n of_o more_o importance_n than_o these_o article_n be_v of_o which_o yet_o lie_v in_o question_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o protestants_n as_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o justification_n of_o the_o value_n of_o good_a work_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o of_o such_o other_o not_o unwitting_a how_o much_o and_o how_o sufficient_a authority_n may_v be_v bring_v against_o your_o side_n for_o proufe_v of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n there_o in_o lest_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v espy_v your_o weakness_n in_o these_o point_n you_o answer_v that_o you_o think_v it_o better_a to_o begin_v with_o small_a matter_n as_o these_o article_n be_v because_o you_o assure_v yourself_o we_o have_v nothing_o for_o confirmation_n of_o they_o thus_o crafty_o you_o shift_v your_o hand_n of_o those_o great_a point_n wherein_o you_o know_v scripture_n council_n doctor_n and_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v of_o our_o side_n and_o cast_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o bone_n to_o gnaw_v upon_o this_o number_n of_o article_n of_o less_o weight_n a_o few_o except_v to_o occupy_v we_o withal_o which_o be_v partly_o concern_v order_n rather_o than_o doctrine_n and_o partly_o sequeles_a of_o former_a and_o confess_v truth_n rather_o they_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n in_o th'exact_a treaty_n of_o which_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o employ_v their_o study_n and_o travail_v of_o writing_n for_o many_o of_o they_o be_v sequeles_a depend_v of_o a_o confess_a truth_n they_o think_v it_o needless_a to_o treat_v of_o they_o for_o as_o much_o as_o a_o principal_a point_n of_o truth_n grant_v the_o grant_v of_o all_o the_o necessary_a sequeles_a be_v employ_v as_o in_o a_o chain_n fratrem_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la gregorium_fw-la fratrem_fw-la which_o comparison_n s._n basile_n make_v in_o the_o like_a case_n he_o that_o draw_v the_o first_o lynk_n after_o he_o draw_v also_o the_o last_o lynke_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n in_o deed_n the_o less_o number_n and_o weight_n of_o such_o ancient_a auctority_n may_v be_v bring_v for_o th'auouch_v of_o they_o and_o yet_o the_o thing_n in_o they_o express_v be_v not_o just_o improve_v by_o any_o clause_n or_o sentence_n you_o have_v say_v or_o utter_v hitherto_o very_o m._n juell_n if_o you_o have_v not_o be_v more_o desyrouse_a to_o deface_v the_o catholic_a church_n then_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o truth_n you_o will_v never_o have_v rehearce_v such_o a_o long_a roll_n of_o article_n which_o for_o the_o more_o part_n be_v of_o less_o importance_n whereby_o you_o go_v about_o to_o discredit_v we_o and_o to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v we_o have_v nothing_o to_o show_v for_o we_o in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o you_o be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o zelouse_a man_n right_a reformer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o undoubted_a restorer_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o touch_v the_o other_o weighty_a point_n whereupon_o almost_o only_o your_o scoolemaister_n of_o germany_n suityerland_n and_o geneva_n both_o in_o their_o preaching_n and_o also_o in_o their_o write_n treat_v you_o will_v not_o yet_o adventure_v the_o trial_n of_o they_o with_o make_v your_o match_n with_o learned_a man_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n set_v they_o forth_o by_o sermon_n busy_o among_o the_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a people_n until_o such_o time_n as_o you_o have_v win_v your_o purpose_n in_o these_o small_a matter_n thus_o you_o seem_v to_o follow_v a_o sleight_n
my_o friend_n request_v and_o in_o some_o part_n also_o my_o conscience_n and_o do_v good_a second_o that_o i_o think_v meek_a sober_a and_o cold_a demeanour_n of_o writing_n to_o be_v most_o sit_v for_o such_o kind_n of_o argument_n three_o and_o special_o that_o my_o hart_n serve_v i_o not_o to_o deal_v with_o m._n juell_n my_o old_a acquaint_v fellow_n and_o countryman_n other_o wise_a then_o swet_o gentil_o and_o courteouslye_o and_o in_o deed_n here_o i_o protest_v that_o i_o love_v m._n juell_n and_o detest_v his_o heresy_n and_o now_o sir_n as_o i_o love_v you_o right_o so_o i_o be_o desyrouse_a of_o your_o soul_n health_n which_o you_o seem_v either_o to_o forgete_v or_o to_o ꝓcure_v by_o a_o wrong_a way_n bethink_v yourself_o i_o pray_v you_o whether_o the_o way_n you_o walk_v in_o be_v not_o the_o same_o and_o you_o the_o man_n that_o solomon_n move_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o there_o be_v a_o way_n 26_o prover._n 26_o that_o seem_v to_o a_o man_n right_a and_o the_o end_n of_o it_o lead_v to_o damnation_n certain_a it_o be_v you_o be_v deceive_v and_o maineteine_v untruth_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v by_o this_o treatise_n here_o in_o you_o sustain_v the_o evil_a of_o human_a infirmity_n marry_o when_o deceit_n be_v by_o plain_a truth_n detect_v then_o to_o dwell_v and_o continewe_v in_o error_n that_o procee_v not_o of_o human_a weakness_n but_o of_o devilish_a obstinacy_n but_o you_o m._n juell_n as_o many_o man_n think_v and_o i_o trust_v be_v not_o yet_o swallow_v up_o of_o that_o gulf_n fain_o will_v i_o do_v you_o good_a if_o i_o wist_v how_o i_o fear_v i_o your_o sore_n be_v putrify_v so_o far_o as_o oil_n and_o lenitive_n will_v not_o serve_v now_o but_o rather_o vinegar_n and_o corosives_n you_o remember_v i_o doubt_n not_o what_o cicero_n say_v that_o medicine_n to_o profit_v most_o which_o cause_v the_o great_a smart_n and_o what_o solomon_n also_o 27_o prover._n 27_o the_o woonde_n of_o à_fw-fr friend_n to_o be_v better_a than_o the_o kiss_n of_o a_o enemy_n the_o best_a salve_n any_o man_n can_v minister_v unto_o you_o very_o i_o think_v be_v to_o exhort_v you_o to_o humility_n and_o to_o deny_v of_o yourself_o for_o if_o you_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o humble_v yourself_o and_o to_o deny_v yourself_o doubtless_o you_o shall_v see_v in_o yourself_o that_o you_o see_v not_o if_o you_o be_v humble_a you_o will_v not_o be_v so_o pufte_v up_o and_o swell_v against_o your_o mother_n the_o church_n you_o will_v not_o contemn_v she_o who_o you_o ought_v to_o honour_n 9_o genes_n 9_o you_o will_v not_o rejoice_v like_o the_o accurse_a cham_n to_o show_v her_o unsemelynesse_n if_o by_o corruption_n of_o time_n any_o perhaps_o be_v grow_v for_o by_o authority_n and_o public_a consent_n say_v what_o you_o will_v none_o be_v mainetein_v if_o you_o will_v deny_v yourself_o to_o be_v the_o man_n you_o be_v not_o you_o shall_v better_o see_v who_o and_o what_o you_o be_v in_o deed_n deny_v yourself_o to_o be_v so_o well_o learned_a as_o you_o seem_v to_o esteem_v yourself_o and_o you_o will_v be_v a_o shame_v to_o make_v such_o strange_a crack_n and_o vaunt_n of_o your_o be_v well_o assure_v of_o that_o you_o have_v preach_v and_o write_v touch_v these_o article_n where_o in_o you_o be_v deceive_v deny_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n though_o you_o have_v put_v on_o the_o bishop_n of_o salesbury_n his_o white_a rochet_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v content_a and_o think_v it_o meet_v also_o to_o geve_v a_o reken_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o preach_v open_o before_o the_o high_a estate_n and_o therefore_o confer_v with_o d._n cole_n and_o with_o mean_a man_n also_o cole_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o first_o answer_n to_o d._n cole_n which_o more_o insolent_o then_o reasonable_o you_o refuse_v to_o do_v and_o by_o such_o conference_n you_o shall_v be_v advertise_v of_o your_o error_n deny_v your_o private_a judgement_n and_o estimation_n of_o your_o long_a study_n in_o divinity_n which_o you_o acknowledge_v in_o your_o reply_n and_o of_o your_o great_a cunning_n in_o the_o same_o and_o you_o shall_v evident_o see_v and_o remember_v that_o your_o time_n have_v be_v most_o bestow_v in_o the_o study_n of_o humanity_n and_o of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n and_o concern_v divinity_n your_o most_o labour_n have_v be_v employ_v to_o find_v matter_n against_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o about_o seriouse_a and_o exact_v discuss_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o holy_a and_o learned_a father_n b._n fissher_n and_o other_o who_o you_o geste_fw-la and_o scoff_n at_o 3●_n in_o the_o sermon_n fol._n 3●_n and_o seek_v to_o discredit_v by_o fond_a argument_n of_o your_o own_o frame_n upon_o they_o by_o you_o father_v you_o be_v touch_v the_o sound_n and_o diepe_a knowledge_n of_o divinity_n skant_o a_o smatterer_n again_o deny_v yourself_o to_o be_v so_o great_a a_o man_n but_o that_o you_o may_v take_v advertisement_n of_o a_o man_n of_o mean_a calling_n deny_v yourself_o to_o be_v so_o honourable_a but_o that_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o your_o honesty_n to_o abide_v by_o your_o promise_n in_o a_o most_o honest_a matter_n by_o your_o own_o prepense_a offer_n make_v you_o may_v easy_o learn_v how_o to_o redress_v that_o have_v be_v do_v amiss_o you_o may_v see_v your_o own_o infirmity_n defect_n oversighte_n and_o ignorances_n plain_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o glass_n all_o self_n love_n and_o blind_a estimation_n of_o yourself_o set_v a_o part_n you_o may_v with_o the_o favour_n of_o all_o good_a man_n with_o the_o wynning_n of_o your_o own_o soul_n and_o many_o other_o who_o you_o have_v perelous_o deceive_v and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v induce_v to_o yield_v to_o the_o truth_n to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o same_o and_o to_o recant_v your_o error_n where_o in_o you_o shall_v do_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o these_o article_n which_o you_o deny_v by_o we_o with_o sufficient_a proof_n and_o testimony_n avouch_v you_o have_v already_o free_o and_o large_o offer_v which_o thing_n that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v god_n geve_v you_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o humble_v your_o hart_n to_o deny_v yourself_o and_o to_o make_v a_o great_a account_n of_o your_o everlasting_a salvation_n then_o of_o your_o worldly_a interest_n thomas_n harding_n because_n m._n ivell_n offer_v to_o be_v try_v not_o only_a by_o the_o scripture_n and_o example's_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o also_o by_o the_o council_n and_o father_n that_o be_v within_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n here_o be_v set_v forth_o a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o time_n of_o both_o for_o the_o most_o part_n such_o as_o be_v in_o this_o treatise_n allege_v abdias_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 50._o anacletus_fw-la 93._o arnobius_n presbyter_n 300._o athanasius_n 379._o ambrose_n 380._o amphilochius_n 380._o augustinus_n 430._o b_o basilius_n 380._o c_o clemens_n papa_n 80._o cyprianus_n 249._o cyrillꝰ_n hierosolymitanus_n 300_o chrysostomus_n 411._o cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n 436._o d_o dionysius_n areopagita_n 96._o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n 255._o damasus_n papa_n 1._o 369._o e_o egesippus_fw-la 160._o eusebius_n caesarien_n 320._o eusebius_n emisenus_n 350._o ephrem_fw-la 380._o epiphanius_n 383._o eutropius_n 550._o f_o flavius_n josephus_n 60._o g_o gregorius_n nyssenus_n 380._o gregorius_n nazianzenus_n 380._o gelasius_n 490._o gennadius_n massiliensis_n 490._o gregorius_n romanus_n 590._o h_o hippolytus_n 220._o hilarius_n pictaviensis_fw-la 371._o hieronymus_n 422._o hilarius_n papa_n 448._o hesychius_n secundum_fw-la lycosth_n 490._o secundum_fw-la alios_fw-la 600._o i_o ignatius_n 111._o justinus_n martyr_n 150._o irenaeus_n 175._o julius_n apricanus_fw-la 220._o julius_n primus_fw-la papa_n 340._o innocentius_n primus_fw-la papa_n 470._o isidorus_n hispalensis_n 600._o l_o leo_n papa_n 1._o 442._o m_o martialis_n burdegalensis_n episcopus_fw-la 50._o melciades_n papa_n 30●_n o_o origenes_n 261._o p_o pontianus_n papa_n 232._o palladius_n 420._o prudentius_n 465._o s_o sixtus_n papa_n 129._o soter_n papa_n 174._o symmachus_n papa_n 500_o t_o tertullianus_n 200._o theodoritus_n 390._o v_o victor_n vitensis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la 500_o concilia_fw-la concilium_fw-la nicenum_n 1._o 326._o concilium_fw-la laodicenum_n 368._o cancilium_fw-la antiochenun_n temporibus_fw-la athanasij_n concilium_fw-la constantinopol_n 1._o temporibus_fw-la damasi_fw-la papae_fw-la concilium_fw-la agathense_o 430._o concilium_fw-la ephesinum_n 1._o 433._o concilium_fw-la chalcedonen_n 453._o concilium_fw-la constantinopo_n in_o trullo_n 535._o concilium_fw-la antisiodorense_n 613._o after_o these_o follow_v oecumenius_n beda_n joannes_n damascenus_n theophylactus_n bernardus_n concilium_fw-la nicenum_n 2._o concilium_fw-la constantien_n concilium_fw-la basileen_n concilium_fw-la florentin_n sub_fw-la eugenio_n 4._o a_o answer_n to_o master_n ivelles_n challenge_n by_o d._n harding_n if_o any_o learned_a man_n of_o
consueverunt_fw-la if_o it_o be_v our_o daily_a meat_n say_v he_o why_o take_v it_o but_o once_o in_o the_o year_n as_o the_o greek_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v in_o the_o east_n 28._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la domini_fw-la secundum_fw-la lucan_n ho._n 28._o s._n augustine_n utter_v the_o same_o thing_n almost_o with_o the_o same_o word_n and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr sermone_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o monte_fw-fr the_o twelve_o chapter_n expownd_v the_o four_o petition_n of_o our_o lord_n prayer_n geve_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n show_v that_o this_o may_v be_v take_v either_o for_o material_a bread_n either_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n or_o for_o spiritual_a meat_n which_o he_o allow_v best_o will_v that_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n they_o of_o the_o easte_n shall_v not_o move_v question_n how_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v their_o daily_a bread_n which_o be_v not_o daily_a partaker_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n where_o as_o for_o all_o that_o this_o bread_n be_v call_v daily_a bread_n there_o he_o say_v thus_o ut_fw-la ergo_fw-la illi_fw-la taceant_fw-la neque_fw-la de_fw-la hac_fw-la re_fw-la sententiam_fw-la svam_fw-la defendant_n vel_fw-la ipsa_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sint_fw-la contenti_fw-la quòd_fw-la sine_fw-la scandalo_fw-la ista_fw-la faciunt_fw-la neque_fw-la ab_fw-la eye_n qui_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la praesunt_fw-la facere_fw-la prohibentur_fw-la neque_fw-la non_fw-la obtemperantes_fw-la condemnantur_fw-la wherefore_o that_o they_o hold_v their_o peace_n and_o stand_v not_o in_o defence_n of_o their_o opinion_n let_v they_o be_v content_a at_o least_o way_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o do_v these_o thing_n with_o out_o offence_n thereof_o take_v neither_o be_v forbid_v of_o those_o that_o be_v over_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v condemn_v when_o they_o disobey_v here_o we_o see_v by_o s._n augustine_n that_o they_o of_o the_o orient_a who_o so_o seldom_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n be_v hold_v for_o all_o that_o for_o christian_a people_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n none_o offence_n thereof_o be_v take_v neither_o be_v they_o inhibit_v of_o their_o custom_n and_o though_o they_o obey_v not_o their_o spiritual_a governor_n move_v they_o to_o receive_v more_o often_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o condemn_v nor_o excommunicate_v 17._o in_o 10._o cap._n ad_fw-la hebr._n hom_n 17._o s._n chrysostome_n many_o time_n exhort_v his_o people_n to_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o receive_v their_o right_n at_o least_o at_o easter_n in_o one_o place_n say_v thus_o what_o mean_v this_o the_o most_o part_n of_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n but_o once_o in_o the_o year_n some_o twice_o some_o often_o therefore_o this_o that_o i_o speak_v be_v to_o all_o not_o to_o they_o only_o that_o be_v here_o present_a but_o to_o those_o also_o that_o live_v in_o wilderness_n for_o they_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n but_o once_o in_o the_o year_n and_o peradventure_o but_o once_o in_o two_o year_n well_o what_o then_o who_o shall_v we_o receive_v those_o that_o come_v but_o once_o or_o that_o come_v often_o or_o that_o come_v seldom_o sooth_o we_o receive_v they_o that_o come_v with_o a_o pure_a and_o a_o clean_a conscience_n with_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o to_o be_v short_a with_o a_o blameless_a life_n they_o that_o be_v such_o let_v they_o come_v always_o and_o they_o that_o be_v not_o such_o let_v not_o they_o come_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o why_o so_o because_o they_o receive_v to_o themselves_o judgement_n damnation_n and_o punishment_n the_o ancient_a doctoures_fw-la special_o chrysostome_n and_o augustine_n be_v full_a of_o such_o sentence_n now_o to_o this_o end_n i_o dryve_v these_o allegation_n leave_v out_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o same_o sense_n although_o many_o time_n the_o people_n forbear_v to_o come_v to_o the_o communion_n so_o as_o many_o time_n none_o at_o all_o be_v find_v dispose_v to_o receive_v yet_o the_o holy_a father_n 17._o the_o people_n forebearing_n the_o communion_n be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o priest_n shall_v not_o say_v mass_n in_o 10._o cap._n ad_fw-la hebr._fw-la homil_n 17._o bishop_n and_o priest_n think_v not_o that_o a_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o daily_o offer_v the_o bless_a sacrifice_n and_o celebrate_v mass_n which_o thing_n may_v sufficient_o be_v prove_v whether_o m._n juell_n that_o make_v himself_o so_o sure_o of_o the_o contrary_a will_v yield_v and_o subscribe_v according_a to_o his_o promise_n or_o no._n of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n these_o word_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v plain_a quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la nos_fw-la nun_n per_fw-la singulos_fw-la dies_fw-la offerimus_fw-la offerimus_fw-la quidem_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la recordationem_fw-la facientes_fw-la mortis_fw-la eius_fw-la &_o una_fw-la est_fw-la hostia_fw-la non_fw-la multae_fw-la etc_n then_o what_o do_v we_o do_v we_o not_o offer_v every_o day_n yea_o very_o we_o do_v so_o but_o we_o do_v it_o for_o record_v of_o his_o death_n and_o it_o be_v one_o host_n not_o many_o here_o i_o hear_v m._n juell_n say_v though_o against_o his_o will_n i_o grawnt_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n but_o i_o stand_v still_o in_o my_o negative_a statutum_fw-la by_o order_n of_o the_o last_o communion_n book_n no_o communion_n may_v be_v say_v or_o have_v with_o out_o three_o do_v communicate_v with_o the_o minister_n at_o jest_n of_o how_o small_a number_n so_o ever_o the_o parish_n be_v de_fw-fr consec_fw-fr do_v 1._o can_v hoc_fw-la quoque_fw-la statutum_fw-la that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v show_v there_o be_v ever_o any_o such_o sacrifice_n celebrate_v with_o out_o a_o communion_n that_o be_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o with_z out_o some_o convenient_a number_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o the_o priest_n for_o proufe_v of_o this_o these_o be_v such_o place_n as_o i_o be_o persuade_v with_o all_o the_o better_a learned_a man_n that_o be_v of_o more_o read_v than_o i_o be_o have_v other_o i_o doubt_n not_o soter_n bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o bout_n the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 170._o who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n under_o antoninus_n verus_n the_o emperor_n for_o order_n of_o celebrate_v the_o mass_n make_v this_o statute_n or_o decree_n ut_fw-la nullus_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la solennia_fw-la celebrare_fw-la praesumat_fw-la nisi_fw-la dvobus_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la sibique_fw-la respondentibus_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la tertius_fw-la habeatur_fw-la quia_fw-la cum_fw-la pluraliter_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la dicitur_fw-la dominus_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la &_o illud_fw-la in_o secretis_fw-la orate_fw-la pro_fw-la me_fw-it apertissimè_fw-la convenit_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsius_fw-la respondeatur_fw-la salutationi_fw-la this_o have_v be_v ordain_v that_o no_o priest_n presume_v to_o celebrate_v the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o mass_n except_o there_o be_v two_o present_a and_o answer_v he_o so_o as_o he_o be_v the_o three_o for_o whereas_o he_o say_v as_o by_o way_n of_o speak_v to_o many_o our_o lord_n be_v with_o you_o and_o likewise_o in_o the_o secret_n pray_v you_o for_o i_o it_o seem_v evident_o convenient_a that_o answer_n be_v make_v to_o his_o salutation_n according_o which_o ancient_a decree_n require_v not_o that_o all_o people_n of_o necessity_n be_v present_a much_o less_o that_o all_o so_o oftentimes_o shall_v communicate_v sacramental_o which_o thing_n it_o require_v neither_o of_o those_o two_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v present_a if_o of_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o this_o decree_n a_o sufficient_a argument_n may_v not_o be_v make_v for_o our_o purpose_n induce_v of_o th'affirmation_n of_o that_o one_o thing_n there_o specify_v the_o denial_n of_o that_o other_o thing_n we_o speak_v of_o which_o manner_n of_o argument_n be_v common_o use_v of_o our_o adversary_n they_o more_o weight_n may_v be_v put_v unto_o it_o in_o this_o case_n for_o that_o where_o as_o the_o receive_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v a_o far_o great_a matter_n then_o to_o answer_v the_o priest_n at_o mass_n if_o that_o holy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n have_v think_v it_o so_o necessary_a as_o that_o the_o mass_n may_v not_o be_v do_v with_o out_o it_o doubteles_a of_o very_a reason_n and_o convenience_n he_o will_v and_o shall_v have_v special_o speak_v of_o that_o rather_o than_o of_o the_o other_o but_o for_o that_o he_o think_v other_o wise_a confundantur_fw-la wise_a exit_fw-la concilio_fw-la agathen_n can_v 31_o missas_fw-la die_fw-la dominico_fw-la secularibꝰ_n totas_fw-la andire_fw-la speciali_fw-la ordine_fw-la praecipimꝰ_n ita_fw-la ut_fw-la ante_fw-la bene_fw-la dictionem_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la egredi_fw-la populus_fw-la non_fw-la praesumat_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la sec●rim_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopo_n publicè_fw-la confundantur_fw-la he_o require_v only_o of_o necessity_n the_o presence_n of_o two_o for_o the_o purpose_n above_o mention_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o agatha_n a_o city_n of_o france_n then_o call_v gallia_n about_o the_o time_n of_o chrysostome_n a_o old_a decree_n of_o fabianus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o martyr_n and_o also_o of_o the_o
sacramental_o with_o the_o priest_n as_o it_o be_v before_o prove_v ergo_fw-la there_o be_v mass_n do_v with_o out_o other_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o priest_n and_o then_o further_o ergo_fw-la private_a mass_n in_o chrysostom_n day_n be_v not_o strange_a and_o then_o yet_o one_o step_n further_o there_o to_o stay_v ergo_fw-la m._n jewel_n according_a to_o his_o own_o promise_n and_o offer_v must_v yield_v subscribe_v and_o recant_v juell_n juell_n or_o that_o there_o be_v then_o any_o communion_n minister_v unto_o the_o people_n under_o one_o kind_n of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n article_n ii_o this_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o unity_n every_o true_a christian_a man_n ought_v in_o receive_v of_o it_o to_o consider_v how_o unity_n may_v be_v acheve_v and_o keep_v rather_o they_o to_o show_v a_o straightness_n of_o conscience_n about_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o how_o much_o the_o end_n of_o every_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v more_o then_o that_o which_o serve_v to_o the_o end_n otherwise_o herein_o the_o breach_n of_o unity_n be_v so_o little_o recompense_v by_o the_o exact_v kepinge_v of_o the_o outward_a ceremony_n that_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o so_o ever_o take_v the_o mystery_n of_o unity_n and_o keep_v not_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n he_o take_v not_o a_o mystery_n for_o himself_o but_o a_o testimony_n against_o himself_o therefore_o they_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o weigh_v with_o themselves_o what_o they_o receive_v in_o this_o sacrament_n who_o move_v by_o slender_a reason_n make_v for_o both_o kynde_n do_v rash_o and_o dangerous_o condemn_v the_o church_n for_o geve_v of_o it_o under_o one_o kind_n to_o all_o that_o do_v not_o in_o their_o own_o person_n consecrate_v and_o offer_v the_o same_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o they_o may_v think_v the_o church_n to_o stand_v upon_o good_a grownde_n herein_o may_v it_o please_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o fruit_n of_o this_o sacrament_n which_o they_o enjoy_v that_o worthy_o receive_v it_o depend_v not_o of_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o redound_v of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o whereas_o under_o either_o kind_n whole_a christ_n be_v very_o present_a for_o now_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v be_v sunder_v no_o more_o 6._o rom._n 6._o because_o he_o die_v no_o more_o this_o healtful_a sacrament_n be_v of_o true_a christian_a people_n with_o no_o less_o fruit_n receive_v under_o one_o kind_n then_o under_o both_o and_o as_o this_o spiritual_a fruit_n be_v not_o any_o thing_n diminish_v to_o he_o that_o receive_v one_o kind_a so_o it_o be_v not_o any_o whit_n increace_v to_o he_o that_o receive_v both_o the_o sacramentary_n that_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n i_o remit_v to_o sundry_a godly_a treatise_n make_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o right_a faith_n in_o that_o point_n i_o think_v it_o not_o necessary_a here_o to_o treat_v thereof_o or_o of_o any_o other_o matter_n which_o m._n juell_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o manifest_o touch_v in_o his_o sermon_n now_o concern_v the_o outward_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n their_o use_n be_v employ_v in_o signification_n only_o and_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n so_o as_o grace_n may_v not_o be_v obtain_v by_o worthy_a receive_n of_o tbe_n sacrament_n onlesse_a both_o kind_n be_v minister_v therefore_o in_o consecrate_v of_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n both_o kynde_n be_v necessary_a for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o prepare_v for_o the_o receive_n only_o but_o also_o for_o renew_v and_o stir_v up_o of_o the_o remembrance_n of_o our_o lord_n death_n so_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n serve_v the_o sacrifice_n by_o which_o the_o death_n and_o oblation_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v both_o the_o kynde_n be_v requisite_a that_o by_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a form_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n shed_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o separate_v from_o his_o body_n may_v evident_o be_v signify_v but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o faithful_a people_n do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n thereby_o to_o attain_v spiritual_a grace_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n diversity_n of_o the_o form_n or_o kynde_n that_o be_v use_v for_o the_o signification_n only_o have_v no_o further_a use_n ne_o profit_n but_o by_o one_o kind_n because_o in_o it_o whole_a christ_n be_v exhibit_v abundance_n of_o all_o grace_n be_v once_o give_v so_o as_o by_o the_o other_o kind_n thereto_o over_o add_v which_o geve_v the_o same_o and_o not_o a_o other_o christ_n no_o further_o augmentation_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n may_v be_v attein_v in_o consideration_n of_o this_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o truth_n while_o in_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n the_o memory_n of_o our_o lord_n death_n and_o passion_n be_v celebrate_v for_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a therein_o to_o express_v most_o plain_o the_o shed_n and_o separate_n of_o the_o blood_n from_o the_o body_n that_o be_v crucify_v have_v always_o to_o that_o purpose_n diligent_o use_v both_o kynde_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o in_o distribute_v of_o the_o bless_a sacramant_n to_o christen_v people_n have_v use_v her_o liberty_n which_o christ_n never_o imbar_v by_o any_o commandment_n to_o the_o contrary_a so_o as_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v most_o for_o the_o behoove_v and_o commodity_n of_o the_o receiver_n and_o have_v minister_v sometime_o both_o kind_n sometime_o one_o kind_n only_o as_o it_o have_v be_v thought_n most_o expedient_a in_o regard_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n ult._n matth._n 26_o christ_n word_n bound_v not_o the_o laity_n to_o receive_v both_o kind_n ante_fw-la passionem_fw-la nobis_fw-la solis_fw-la praecepit_fw-la hoc_fw-la facere_fw-la inquiunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la apud_fw-la clementem_fw-la lib._n 8._o constitu_fw-la apostolicarum_fw-la cap._n ult._n as_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o they_o perteine_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o to_o their_o successor_n for_o to_o they_o only_o he_o give_v commandment_n to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o do_v in_o his_o supper_n as_o clement_n say_v to_o they_o only_o say_v do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n he_o give_v commission_n to_o consecrate_v offer_v and_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n by_o the_o same_o word_n ordain_v they_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n wherefore_o this_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o lie_v people_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v just_o gather_v by_o this_o place_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v of_o necessity_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o deadly_a sin_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kynde_n and_o this_o understand_v they_o which_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n past_a change_v the_o old_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o receive_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n by_o their_o private_a authority_n will_v needs_o usurp_v the_o cup_n also_o for_o see_v themselves_o not_o to_o have_v sufficient_a proufe_v and_o warrant_v for_o their_o do_v of_o these_o word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o the_o better_a to_o bolster_v up_o their_o new_a flangled_a attempt_n 6._o joan._n 6._o they_o think_v it_o better_a to_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o s._n john_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o which_o word_n for_o all_o that_o our_o new_a master_n of_o these_o xl_o year_n past_a will_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o not_o of_o the_o sacramental_a eat_n which_o place_n although_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o sacramental_a eat_n as_o it_o may_v be_v and_o be_v take_v for_o both_o of_o the_o doctor_n view_v a_o part_n yet_o in_o all_o that_o chapter_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o cup_n nor_o of_o wine_n at_o all_o wherefore_o they_o that_o cry_v so_o much_o on_o the_o institution_n and_o commandment_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o find_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n neither_o commandment_n where_o he_o give_v charge_v the_o sacrament_n so_o to_o be_v give_v neither_o so_o much_o as_o any_o example_n where_o christ_n give_v it_o under_o both_o kynde_n to_o any_o other_o then_o to_o the_o apostle_n where_o as_o contrary_v wise_a it_o may_v be_v show_v of_o our_o part_n that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v give_v under_o one_o kind_n only_o to_o the_o two_o disciple_n that_o go_v to_o emaus_n 24._o luc._n 24._o for_o that_o the_o
innocentius_n zosimus_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n what_o better_a reason_n have_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o infant_n from_o the_o cup_n than_o the_o anabaptiste_n have_v to_o keep_v they_o from_o their_o baptism_n if_o they_o allege_v their_o impotency_n of_o remember_v our_o lord_n death_n the_o anabaptiste_n will_v lihewise_o allege_v their_o impotency_n of_o receive_v and_o understand_v doctrine_n that_o christ_n institution_n in_o this_o behalf_n seem_v to_o require_v thus_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n themselves_o do_v agnise_v that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n pertain_v not_o to_o all_o of_o necessity_n so_o have_v they_o neither_o godly_a charity_n to_o join_v with_o the_o church_n neither_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o impugn_v the_o church_n and_o although_o herein_o we_o can_v be_v content_a infant_n not_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o yet_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kynde_n have_v not_o ever_o be_v general_a and_o as_o we_o do_v not_o condemn_v it_o but_o confess_v it_o may_v be_v restore_v again_o by_o th'auctoritie_n of_o the_o church_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n upon_o mature_a deliberation_n before_o have_v and_o a_o wholesome_a remedy_n against_o the_o inconvenience_n thereof_o provide_v even_o so_o be_v we_o able_a to_o show_v good_a authority_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o one_o kind_n now_o use_v in_o the_o church_n and_o because_o m._n juell_n bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n nothing_o can_v be_v bring_v for_o it_o of_o our_o side_n some_o place_n i_o will_v allege_v here_o that_o seem_v to_o i_o very_o evident_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o use_n of_o both_o kynde_n have_v not_o always_o be_v think_v necessary_a to_o all_o person_n and_o that_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n have_v be_v practise_v and_o hold_v for_o good_a within_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v so_o fain_o bound_v we_o unto_o kind_n proof_n for_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n here_o may_v be_v allege_v first_o the_o example_n of_o our_o lord_n himself_o out_o of_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o s._n luke_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o before_o where_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o he_o give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o two_o disciple_n at_o emaus_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n only_o which_o place_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o more_o weight_n of_o authority_n in_o a_o catholic_a man_n judgement_n because_o it_o be_v bring_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o also_o by_o the_o council_n of_o basile_n for_o proufe_v of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n that_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n do_v affirm_v it_o plain_o and_o the_o word_n confer_v with_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n do_v agree_v and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o nedeful_a of_o our_o own_o head_n to_o add_v thereto_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o cup_n as_o our_o adversary_n do_v by_o their_o figure_n synecdoche_n it_o appear_v by_o that_o those_o two_o disciple_n declare_v to_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n assemble_v together_o in_o jerusalem_n how_o they_o know_v our_o lord_n in_o fractione_n panis_fw-la in_o breakinge_v of_o the_o bread_n to_o they_o which_o can_v not_o be_v take_v for_o the_o wine_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o know_v he_o in_o break_v of_o the_o bread_n he_o vanish_v away_o from_o their_o sight_n ere_fw-we that_o he_o take_v the_o cup_n in_o to_o his_o hand_n and_o bless_v it_o and_o give_v it_o unto_o they_o as_o it_o appear_v evident_o enough_o to_o s._n augustine_n to_o bede_n and_o to_o all_o other_o that_o be_v not_o wilful_o opinative_a again_o what_o need_n be_v it_o to_o use_v violence_n in_o this_o scripture_n and_o join_v unto_o it_o a_o patch_v of_o our_o own_o devise_n by_o so_o simple_a a_o warrant_n of_o a_o figure_n since_o that_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o learned_a father_n christ_n give_v here_o to_o the_o two_o disciple_n not_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o th'effecte_n of_o the_o same_o and_o th'effecte_n presuppose_v the_o cause_n for_o saint_n augustine_n confess_v by_o that_o sacrament_n of_o bread_n so_o he_o call_v it_o 25._o de_fw-fr consensu_fw-la euangelistarun_n li._n 3._o ca._n 25._o unitate_fw-la corporis_fw-la participata_fw-la removeri_fw-la impedimentum_fw-la inimici_fw-la ut_fw-la christus_fw-la posset_n agnosci_fw-la that_o thereby_o they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v make_v one_o body_n with_o christ_n and_o that_o all_o impediment_n or_o let_n of_o the_o enemy_n the_o devil_n be_v take_v away_o so_o as_o christ_n may_v be_v acknowlege_v what_o more_o shall_v they_o have_v get_v if_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o cup_n also_o here_o may_v be_v allege_v the_o place_n of_o the_o act_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o breakinge_v of_o the_o bread_n the_o cup_n not_o speak_v of_o which_o the_o heretic_n call_v waldenses_n do_v confess_v that_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o confession_n ad_fw-la vladislaun_n and_o likewise_o the_o place_n of_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n and_o special_o that_o of_o the_o seven_o and_o twentieth_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n where_o chrysostome_n and_o other_o father_n understand_v the_o bread_n that_o saint_n paul_n in_o peril_n of_o shipwreck_n take_v give_v thanks_n over_o brake_n and_o eat_v to_o be_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v merueil_v at_o albeit_o it_o s._n paul_n deliver_v to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n under_o hothe_a kynde_n that_o yet_o upon_o occasion_n give_v and_o when_o condition_n of_o time_n so_o require_v he_o minister_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n since_o that_o with_o out_o doubt_n he_o take_v that_o holy_a mystery_n under_o one_o kind_n for_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n as_o we_o perceive_v by_o his_o word_n 10._o 2._o cor._n 10._o where_o he_o say_v vnus_fw-la panis_fw-la et_fw-la unum_fw-la corpus_fw-la multi_fw-la sumus_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la uno_fw-la pane_fw-la participamus_fw-la one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n we_o be_v many_o be_v all_o that_o do_v participate_v of_o one_o bread_n where_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o cup_n and_o likewise_o by_o his_o word_n where_o he_o speak_v disiunctive_o as_o the_o greke_n and_o the_o true_a latin_a text_n have_v quicunque_fw-la manducaverit_fw-la panem_fw-la 11._o 1._o cor._n 11._o vel_fw-la biberit_fw-la calicem_fw-la domini_fw-la indignê_fw-la reus_fw-la erit_fw-la corporis_fw-la et_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la who_o so_o ever_o eat_v the_o bread_n or_o drynk_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o our_o lord_n unworthe_o he_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n whereon_o depend_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o contrary_a that_o who_o so_o ever_o either_o eat_v this_o bread_n worthy_o or_o drink_v this_o cup_n worthy_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v righteousness_n and_o life_n for_o this_o purpose_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a place_n in_o the_o hebrew_n gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n which_o s._n hierome_n say_v he_o see_v in_o the_o library_n of_o caesarea_n and_o translate_v it_o this_o place_n be_v cite_v by_o s._n hierome_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ecclesiasticis_fw-la scriptoribus_fw-la in_o jacobo_n fratre_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o word_n touch_v the_o communion_n that_o s._n hierome_n rehearse_v agree_v thorough_o with_o those_o of_o s._n luke_n 24._o chapter_n matthaeus_n sic_fw-la refert_fw-la dominus_fw-la autem_fw-la etc_n matthew_n report_v thus_o when_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v his_o shroud_n unto_o the_o bishope_n servant_n he_o go_v to_o james_n and_o appear_v unto_o he_o for_o james_n have_v make_v a_o oath_n that_o he_o will_v not_o eat_v bread_n from_o that_o hour_n he_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o he_o see_v he_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a it_o follow_v a_o little_a after_o afferte_fw-la ait_fw-la dominus_fw-la mensam_fw-la &_o panem_fw-la statimque_fw-la addit_fw-la tulit_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o benedixit_fw-la ac_fw-la fregit_fw-la &_o dedit_fw-la jacobo_n iusto_fw-la &_o dixit_fw-la ei_fw-la frater_fw-la comede_fw-la panem_fw-la tuum_fw-la quia_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la filius_fw-la hominis_fw-la à_fw-la dormientibus_fw-la bring_v the_o table_n and_o set_v on_o bread_n quoth_v our_o lord_n and_o by_o and_o by_o it_o be_v add_v he_o take_v bread_n and_o bless_v it_o and_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o james_n the_o just_a and_o say_v unto_o he_o my_o brother_n eat_v thy_o bread_n for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a no_o man_n can_v doubt_n but_o this_o be_v the_o sacrament_n and_o wine_n be_v there_o none_o give_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v gather_v for_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o s._n james_n have_v
gelasius_n go_v about_o to_o spread_v their_o heresy_n in_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o party_n of_o italy_n their_o heretical_a opinion_n be_v that_o christ_n take_v not_o our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o that_o he_o have_v a_o fantastical_a body_n and_o die_v not_o ne_z rose_z again_o trulye_a and_o in_o deed_n but_o by_o way_n of_o fantasy_n and_o therefore_o at_o the_o communion_n they_o abstein_v from_o the_o cup_n and_o the_o better_a to_o cloak_v their_o heresy_n come_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n with_o other_o catholic_a people_n against_o who_o leo_n say_v thus_o gesima_fw-la serm._n 4._o de_fw-fr quadra_fw-la gesima_fw-la abdicant_fw-la enim_fw-la se_fw-la sacramento_fw-la salutis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la etc_n they_o dryve_v then selue_o away_o from_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o as_o they_o deny_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v bear_v in_o truth_n of_o our_o flesh_n so_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o die_v and_o rise_v again_o true_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o condemn_v the_o day_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o gladness_n that_o be_v the_o sunnedaye_n to_o be_v their_o sad_a fastinge_a day_n and_o where_o as_o to_o cloak_v their_o infidelity_n they_o dare_v to_o be_v at_o our_o mystery_n they_o temper_v themselves_o so_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o may_v the_o more_o safe_o keep_v they_o privye_v with_o unworthy_a mowth_n they_o receive_v christ_n body_n but_o to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o redemption_n utter_o they_o will_v none_o of_o it_o which_o thing_n we_o will_v advertise_v your_o holiness_n of_o that_o both_o such_o man_n may_v be_v manifest_v by_o these_o token_n unto_o you_o and_o also_o that_o they_o who_o devilish_a simulation_n and_o feign_v be_v find_v be_v bring_v to_o light_n and_o bewray_v of_o the_o fellowship_n of_o saint_n may_v be_v thrust_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o priestly_a authority_n thus_o far_o be_v leo_n his_o word_n gelasius_n that_o succeed_v forty_o year_n after_o leo_n employ_v no_o less_o diligence_n than_o he_o do_v utter_o to_o vanquish_v and_o abolish_v that_o horrible_a heresy_n of_o who_o platina_n write_v that_o he_o banish_v so_o many_o manichee_n as_o be_v find_v at_o rome_n and_o there_o open_o burn_v their_o book_n and_o because_o this_o heresy_n shall_v none_o else_o where_o take_v root_n and_o springe_n he_o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o mai●ricus_n and_o joannes_n two_o bishop_n amongst_o other_o thing_n warn_v they_o of_o the_o same_o out_o of_o which_o epistle_n this_o fragment_n only_o be_v take_v whereby_o he_o do_v both_o brief_o show_v what_o the_o manichee_n do_v for_o cloak_v of_o their_o infidelity_n as_o leo_n say_v and_o also_o in_o as_o much_o as_o their_o opinion_n be_v that_o christ_n body_n have_v not_o very_a blood_n as_o be_v fantastical_a only_o and_o therefore_o superstitious_o abstein_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o that_o holy_a blood_n geve_v charge_n and_o commandment_n that_o either_o forsake_v their_o heresy_n they_o receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n to_o wit_n under_o both_o kynde_n or_o that_o they_o be_v keep_v from_o they_o whole_o here_o the_o word_n of_o leo_n afore_o mention_v and_o this_o canon_n of_o gelasius_n confer_v together_o special_o the_o story_n of_o that_o time_n know_v it_o may_v soon_o appear_v to_o any_o juell_n juell_n or_o that_o the_o people_n have_v their_o come_v prayer_n then_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n that_o they_o understand_v not_o of_o the_o church_n service_n in_o learned_a tongue_n which_o the_o unlearned_a people_n in_o old_a time_n in_o sundry_a place_n understand_v not_o article_n iii_o if_o you_o mean_v master_n juell_n by_o the_o people_n common_a prayer_n such_o as_o at_o that_o time_n they_o common_o make_v to_o god_n in_o private_a devotion_n i_o think_v they_o utter_v they_o in_o that_o tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v and_o so_o do_v christian_a people_n now_o for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o it_o have_v never_o be_v reprove_v by_o any_o catholic_a doctor_n but_o if_o by_o the_o common_a prayer_n you_o mean_v the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o the_o most_o part_n have_v be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o bishop_n priest_n deacons_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n the_o people_n to_o sundry_a part_n of_o it_o say_v amen_o or_o otherwise_o geve_v their_o assent_n i_o grant_v some_o understand_v the_o language_n thereof_o and_o some_o understand_v it_o not_o i_o mean_v for_o the_o time_n you_o refer_v we_o unto_o even_o of_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n conversation_n here_o in_o earth_n for_o about_o nine_o hundred_o year_n past_a it_o be_v certain_a the_o people_n in_o some_o country_n have_v their_o service_n in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v of_o our_o own_o country_n of_o england_n but_o to_o speak_v first_o of_o antiquity_n and_o of_o the_o compass_n of_o your_o first_o syx_n hundred_o year_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o sundry_a ancient_a record_n both_o of_o doctor_n and_o of_o council_n special_o of_o the_o council_n laodicene_n in_o phrygia_n pacatiana_n hold_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o lesser_a asia_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 364._o that_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v solemn_a service_n in_o due_a order_n and_o form_n set_v forth_o with_o exact_v distinction_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n of_o hour_n day_n feast_n and_o time_n of_o the_o year_n of_o silence_n and_o open_v pronounce_v of_o geve_v the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n to_o the_o bishop_n first_o by_o the_o priest_n then_o by_o the_o lie_v people_n of_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o only_a minister_n come_v to_o the_o altar_n to_o receive_v the_o communion_n with_o diverse_a other_o seemly_a observation_n as_o for_o the_o latin_a church_n they_o have_v their_o prayer_n and_o service_n also_o but_o in_o such_o fix_a order_n long_o after_o the_o greek_n for_o damasus_n the_o pope_n first_o ordain_v that_o psalm_n shall_v be_v long_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alternatim_fw-la interchangeable_o or_o by_o course_n so_o as_o now_o we_o sing_v they_o in_o the_o quyere_o and_o that_o in_o the_o end_n of_o every_o psalm_n shall_v be_v say_v gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la &_o filio_fw-la &_o spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la sicut_fw-la erat_fw-la etc_n which_o he_o cause_v to_o be_v do_v by_o counsel_n of_o s._n hierome_n presbyterum_fw-la in_o rescripto_fw-la hieronymi_n ad_fw-la 2._o epist_n damasi_fw-la papae_fw-la ad_fw-la hieronymun_n presbyterum_fw-la that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o 318._o bishop_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n may_v with_o like_a fellowship_n be_v declare_v in_o the_o mowthe_n of_o the_o latin_n to_o who_o damasus_n write_v by_o bonifacius_n the_o priest_n to_o jerusalem_n that_o hierom_n will_v send_v unto_o he_o psallentiam_fw-la graecorum_n the_o manner_n of_o sing_v of_o the_o greek_n so_o as_o he_o have_v learn_v the_o same_o of_o alexander_n the_o bishop_n in_o the_o east_n in_o that_o epistle_n complain_v of_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o sunnedaye_n but_o one_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o one_o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n rehearse_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sing_v with_o the_o voice_n hear_v nor_o the_o comeliness_n of_o hymn_n know_v among_o they_o about_o the_o same_o time_n s._n ambrose_n also_o take_v order_n for_o the_o service_n of_o his_o church_n of_o milan_n and_o make_v holy_a hymn_n himself_o confessionun_n lib._n confessionun_n in_o who_o time_n as_o s._n augustine_n write_v when_o justina_n the_o young_a emperor_n valentinians_n mother_n for_o cause_n of_o her_o heresy_n wherewith_o she_o be_v seduce_v by_o the_o arianes_n persecute_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o the_o people_n thereof_o occupy_v themselves_o in_o devoute_a watch_n more_o than_o before_o time_n ready_a to_o dye_v with_o their_o bishop_n in_o that_o quarrel_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o hymn_n and_o psalm_n shall_v be_v song_n in_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o east_n party_n that_o the_o good_a folk_n thereby_o may_v have_v some_o comfort_n and_o spiritual_a relief_n in_o that_o lamentable_a state_n and_o continual_a sorrow_n thereof_o the_o church_n of_o the_o west_n forthwith_o take_v example_n and_o in_o every_o country_n they_o follow_v the_o same_o in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o retractation_n 11._o cap._n 11._o he_o show_v that_o in_o his_o time_n such_o manner_n of_o sing_v begin_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o aphrica_n before_o this_o time_n have_v hilarius_n also_o the_o bishop_n of_o poiteer_n in_o france_n make_v hymn_n for_o that_o purpose_n of_o which_o s._n hierom_n make_v mention_v galat._n in_o 2._o prooemio_fw-la commentariorum_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la galat._n much_o may_v be_v allege_v for_o proufe_v of_o have_v service_n in_o the_o greek_a and_o in_o the_o
bird_n do_v for_o owselle_n popinjay_n raven_n and_o pie_n and_o such_o the_o like_a bird_n oftetymes_o be_v teach_v of_o man_n to_o sound_n they_o know_v not_o what_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v take_v of_o th'understanding_n of_o the_o sense_n not_o of_o the_o tongue_n which_o the_o service_n be_v song_n in_o for_o the_o people_n of_o hippo_n where_o he_o be_v bishop_n understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n mean_o which_o sense_n can_v not_o right_o and_o safe_o be_v attein_v of_o the_o common_a people_n habetur_fw-la de_fw-fr ecclesiasticis_fw-la diversis_fw-la capitulis_fw-la constitutione_n 123._o greg._n haloandro_n interpret_v no_o in_o veteri_fw-la translatione_fw-la nihil_fw-la tale_n habetur_fw-la but_o be_v better_o and_o more_o holesom_o teach_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o learned_a bishop_n and_o priest_n the_o commandment_n of_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n which_o m._n juell_n allege_v that_o bishop_n and_o priest_n shall_v celebrate_v the_o holy_a oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o call_v the_o mass_n not_o close_o 〈◊〉_d close_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o with_o utterance_n and_o sound_n of_o voice_n that_o they_o may_v be_v hear_v of_o the_o people_n make_v nothing_o for_o the_o service_n to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o english_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o in_o any_o other_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n of_o any_o other_o nation_n but_o require_v only_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n open_v pronounce_v declare_v justinianes_n ordinance_n true_o declare_v vocal_a not_o mental_a speak_v not_o whisper_v with_o the_o breath_n only_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n and_o other_o service_n wherein_o he_o agree_v with_o s._n augustine_n who_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr magistro_fw-la 1._o cap._n 1._o say_v that_o when_o we_o pray_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o speak_v onlesse_a perhaps_o we_o do_v as_o priest_n do_v who_o when_o they_o pray_v in_o public_a assemble_v use_v speak_v for_o cause_n of_o signify_v their_o mind_n that_o be_v to_o show_v that_o they_o pray_v not_o to_o th'intent_n god_n but_o man_n may_v hear_v and_o with_o a_o certain_a consent_n through_o put_v in_o mind_n by_o sound_n of_o voice_n may_v be_v lyft_v up_o unto_o god_n this_o much_o s._n augustine_n there_o and_o this_o be_v the_o right_a meaning_n of_o that_o constitution_n and_o thus_o he_o ordain_v for_o the_o greke_n church_n only_a and_o thereto_o only_o it_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v for_o that_o some_o think_v the_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v rather_o with_o silence_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n special_o at_o the_o consecration_n and_o as_o that_o constitution_n pertein_v to_o the_o greek_n and_o not_o to_o the_o latin_n so_o be_v it_o not_o find_v in_o the_o latin_a book_n until_o gregorius_n haloander_n of_o germany_n of_o late_a year_n translate_v the_o place_n and_o where_o m._n juell_n allege_v this_o commandment_n of_o justinian_n against_o the_o have_v of_o the_o service_n in_o a_o learned_a tongue_n unknowen_a to_o the_o common_a people_n it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v how_o he_o demean_v himself_o not_o upright_o but_o so_o as_o every_o man_n may_v thereby_o know_v a_o scholar_n of_o luther_n caluine_n and_o peter_n martyr_n for_o whereas_o by_o th'allegation_n of_o that_o ordinance_n he_o may_v seem_v to_o bring_v somewhat_o that_o make_v for_o the_o bless_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n common_o name_v the_o mass_n he_o dissemble_v the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o justinian_n put_v express_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d id_fw-la est_fw-la divinam_fw-la oblationem_fw-la the_o divine_a or_o holy_a oblation_n and_o term_v it_o other_o wise_a in_o his_o reply_n by_o the_o name_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o ministration_n refuse_v the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o he_o refuse_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o through_o fooy_v and_o cog_v their_o dye_n and_o other_o false_a play_n these_o new_a perilouse_a teacher_n deceive_v many_o poor_a soul_n and_o rob_v they_o of_o the_o sure_a simplicity_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o where_o be_v this_o commandment_n give_v in_o constantinople_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o grece_n where_o the_o greke_n tongue_n be_v common_o know_v that_o emperor_n have_v dominion_n over_o some_o nation_n that_o understand_v not_o the_o greke_n common_o yet_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v of_o any_o constitution_n that_o ever_o he_o make_v for_o service_n there_o to_o be_v have_v in_o their_o vulgar_a and_o barbarous_a tongue_n so_o many_o nation_n have_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n the_o common_a people_n whereof_o understand_v neither_o greke_n nor_o latin_n if_o the_o have_v of_o the_o service_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n have_v be_v think_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n the_o father_n that_o stickte_n not_o to_o bestow_v their_o blood_n for_o their_o flock_n will_v not_o have_v spare_v that_o small_a pain_n and_o travail_n to_o put_v their_o service_n in_o vulgar_a tongue_n if_o it_o have_v be_v necessary_a it_o have_v be_v do_v if_o it_o have_v be_v do_v it_o have_v be_v mention_v by_o one_o or_o other_o 39_o psal_n 104._o lib._n 1_o contra_fw-la haeres_fw-la haeresi_fw-la 39_o it_o appear_v by_o arnobius_n upon_o the_o psalm_n by_o epiphanius_n write_v against_o heresy_n and_o by_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n that_o by_o account_n of_o th'antiquitie_n there_o be_v 72._o tongue_n in_o the_o world_n q._n in_o tuscul_n q._n cicero_n say_v that_o they_o be_v in_o number_n infinite_a of_o they_o all_o neither_o m._n juell_n nor_o any_o one_o of_o his_o side_n be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o nation_n be_v ever_o for_o the_o space_n of_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n in_o any_o other_o then_o in_o greke_n and_o latin_n for_o further_a answer_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o justinianes_n ordinance_n we_o hold_v well_o with_o it_o good_a man_n think_v it_o meet_v the_o service_n be_v utter_v now_o also_o with_o a_o distincte_n and_o audible_a voice_n that_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n special_o so_o many_o as_o understand_v it_o may_v the_o more_o be_v stir_v to_o devotion_n and_o thereby_o the_o rather_o be_v move_v to_o say_v amen_o and_o geve_v their_o assent_n to_o it_o through_o their_o obedience_n and_o credit_n they_o bear_v to_o the_o church_n assure_v themselves_o the_o same_o to_o be_v good_a and_o helthfulll_v and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o that_o purpose_n we_o have_v common_o see_v the_o priest_n when_o he_o speed_v he_o to_o say_v his_o service_n to_o ring_v the_o sawnce_v bell_n and_o speak_v out_o a_o loud_a pater_fw-la noster_fw-la by_o which_o token_n the_o people_n be_v command_v silence_n reverence_n and_o devotion_n now_o to_o say_v somewhat_o touch_v the_o common_a prayer_n or_o service_n of_o the_o curche_n of_o aphrica_n where_o s_n augustine_n preach_v in_o latin_a as_o you_o say_v and_o i_o deny_v not_o and_o thereof_o you_o seem_v to_o conclude_v that_o the_o common_a people_n of_o that_o country_n understand_v and_o speak_v latin_a as_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n that_o the_o african_a church_n have_v their_o service_n in_o latin_a it_o be_v evident_a by_o sundry_a place_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o psalm_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n and_o most_o plain_o in_o a_o epistle_n that_o he_o write_v to_o s._n hierome_n in_o which_o he_o show_v that_o the_o people_n of_o a_o city_n in_o aphrica_n be_v great_o move_v and_o offend_v with_o their_o bishop_n for_o that_o in_o recite_v the_o scripture_n for_o part_n of_o the_o service_n to_o they_o he_o read_v out_o of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o jonas_n the_o prophet_n not_o cucurbita_fw-la after_o the_o old_a text_n which_o they_o have_v be_v accustom_v unto_o but_o hedera_fw-la after_o the_o new_a translation_n of_o s._n hierome_n punici_fw-la all_o people_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n understand_v not_o the_o latin_a service_n lib._n 3.2_o belli_fw-la punici_fw-la now_o as_o i_o grant_v that_o some_o understand_v it_o so_o i_o have_v cause_n to_o doubt_n whether_o some_o other_o understand_v it_o or_o no._n nay_o rather_o i_o have_v great_a probability_n to_o tkinke_v they_o understand_v it_o not_o for_o the_o betray_n of_o hannibal_n ambassador_n to_o the_o roman_n by_o their_o punicall_a language_n whereof_o titus_n livius_n write_v and_o likewise_o the_o conference_n betwixt_o sylla_n the_o noble_a man_n of_o rome_n and_o bocchus_n king_n of_o numidia_n have_v by_o mean_a of_o interpreter_n adhibit_v of_o both_o party_n as_o saluste_n record_v in_o bello_fw-la jugurthino_n declare_v that_o the_o tongue_n of_o aphrica_n be_v the_o
punicall_a tongue_n and_o not_o the_o latin_a tongue_n as_o likewise_o the_o people_n of_o spaigne_n name_v iberi_n speak_v that_o language_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o they_o let_v he_o read_v titus_n livius_fw-la de_fw-la bello_fw-la macedonico_n for_o there_o he_o record_v that_o when_o those_o of_o aphrica_n or_o of_o spaigne_n and_o the_o roman_n come_v together_o for_o parley_n and_o talk_v they_o use_v a_o interpreter_n and_o vlpianus_n the_o lawyer_n a_o great_a officer_n about_o alexander_n severus_n the_o emperor_n at_o the_o beginning_n of_o christian_a religion_n 3._o in_o l_o fideicommissa_fw-la ff_n d._n leg_n 3._o write_v that_o fidei_fw-la commissa_fw-la may_v be_v leave_v in_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o put_v for_o example_n the_o punicall_a and_o the_o french_a or_o rather_o gallicall_a tongue_n this_o much_o or_o more_o may_v here_o be_v say_v of_o the_o language_n of_o the_o people_n of_o gallia_n now_o call_v france_n which_o they_o be_v barbarouse_n and_o vulgar_a and_o not_o only_a latin_n and_o yet_o have_v they_o of_o that_o nation_n their_o service_n then_o in_o latin_a as_o all_o the_o west_n church_n have_v that_o the_o common_a language_n of_o the_o people_n there_o be_v vulgar_a the_o use_n of_o the_o latin_a serve_v for_o the_o learned_a as_o we_o must_v needs_o judge_v we_o have_v first_o the_o authority_n of_o titus_n livius_n 7._o ab_fw-la urbe_fw-la condita_fw-la lib._n 7._o who_o write_v that_o a_o galloes_n or_o as_o now_o we_o say_v a_o french_a man_n of_o a_o notable_a stature_n provoke_v a_o roman_a to_o fight_v with_o he_o man_n for_o man_n make_v his_o challenge_n by_o a_o interpreter_n which_o have_v not_o be_v do_v in_o case_n the_o latin_a tongue_n have_v be_v common_a to_o that_o nation_n next_o the_o place_n of_o vlpianus_n before_o mention_v then_o the_o record_n of_o aelius_n lampridius_n who_o write_v that_o a_o woman_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o druid_n mamaeae_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la alexandri_fw-la mamaeae_fw-la cry_v out_o a_o loud_a to_o alexander_n severus_n mammaea_n her_o son_n the_o emperor_n as_o he_o march_v forward_o on_o a_o day_n with_o his_o army_n gallico_n sermone_fw-la in_o the_o gallicall_a tongue_n these_o word_n bode_v his_o death_n which_o right_o so_o short_o after_o follow_v vadas_fw-la nec_fw-la victoriam_fw-la spear_n ne_fw-la militi_fw-la tuo_fw-la credas_fw-la go_v thy_o way_n and_o look_v not_o for_o the_o victory_n trust_v not_o thy_o soldier_n last_o the_o witness_n of_o s._n hierom_n who_o have_v travail_v over_o that_o region_n and_o therefore_o be_v skilful_a of_o the_o whole_a state_n thereof_o galatas_fw-la in_o prooemio_fw-la 2._o comment_n ad_fw-la galatas_fw-la acknowlege_v the_o people_n of_o trevere_n and_o of_o that_o territory_n to_o have_v a_o peculiar_a language_n diverse_a from_o latin_a and_o greke_n if_o all_o that_o i_o have_v bring_v here_o touch_v this_o matter_n be_v well_o weigh_v it_o will_v seem_v probable_a i_o doubt_n not_o that_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o aphrica_n understand_v not_o the_o service_n which_o they_o have_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n and_o no_o less_o may_v be_v think_v of_o gallia_n and_o spaigne_n and_o so_o far_o it_o be_v prove_v against_o m._n juelles_n stowte_n assertion_n that_o within_o his_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n some_o christian_a people_n have_v their_o common_a prayer_n and_o service_n in_o a_o tongue_n they_o understand_v not_o and_o thus_o all_o his_o allegation_n bring_v for_o proufe_v of_o his_o say_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v answer_v the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n except_v which_o ere_fw-we i_o answer_v i_o will_v according_a to_o my_o promise_n prove_v england_n the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o latin_a service_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o about_o nine_o hundred_o year_n past_a yea_o a_o thousand_o also_o and_o therefore_o some_o deal_n within_o his_o syx_n hundred_o year_n even_o in_o s._n gregory_n time_n the_o service_n be_v in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n in_o this_o land_n of_o england_n then_o call_v britain_n and_o begin_v to_o be_v call_v england_n at_o least_o for_o so_o much_o as_o sithence_o and_o at_o these_o day_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o england_n beda_n a_o english_a man_n that_o write_v the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 731._o and_o of_o their_o come_n in_o to_o britain_n about_o 285._o record_v that_o s._n augustine_n and_o his_o company_n who_o be_v send_v hither_o to_o convert_v the_o english_a people_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o briton_n here_o have_v profess_v long_o before_o have_v a_o safe_a conduct_v grant_v the_o by_o king_n ethelbert_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n where_o they_o will_v say_v and_o sing_v their_o service_n in_o a_o church_n build_v of_o old_a time_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o s._n martin_n adjoin_v on_o the_o east_n side_n of_o the_o head_n city_n of_o kent_n while_o the_o roman_n dwell_v in_o britain_n the_o word_n of_o beda_n be_v these_o 26._o lib._n 1._o hist_o ecclesiast_fw-la cap_n 26._o in_o hac_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la convenire_fw-la primo_fw-la psallere_fw-la orare_fw-la missas_fw-la facere_fw-la praedicare_fw-la &_o baptizare_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la in_o this_o church_n they_o begin_v first_o to_o assemble_v themselves_o together_o to_o sing_v to_o pray_v to_o say_v mass_n to_o preach_v and_o to_o baptise_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o be_v the_o service_n and_o no_o doubt_n they_o resort_v to_o it_o who_o beleve_v and_o be_v of_o they_o baptize_v wonder_v as_o bede_n say_v at_o the_o simplicity_n of_o their_o innocent_a life_n and_o swetnes_n of_o their_o heavenly_a doctrine_n in_o english_a it_o be_v not_o for_o they_o have_v no_o skille_n of_o that_o tongue_n as_o bedo_n show_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 23._o and_o therefore_o ere_fw-we they_o enter_v the_o land_n they_o take_v with_o they_o by_o commandment_n of_o s._n gregory_n 25._o lib._n 1._o c._n 25._o interpreter_n out_o of_o france_n which_o interpreter_n serve_v for_o open_v preach_v and_o private_a instruction_n exhortation_n and_o teach_n in_o sing_v and_o say_v the_o service_n there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o they_o whereas_o s._n augustine_n after_o that_o the_o english_a nation_n have_v receive_v the_o faith_n and_o he_o have_v be_v make_v archebishop_n over_o they_o have_v find_v the_o faith_n be_v one_o diversity_n of_o custom_n in_o diverse_a church_n one_o manner_n of_o mass_n in_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n a_o other_o in_o that_o of_o france_n for_o this_o and_o certain_a other_o purpose_n send_v two_o of_o his_o clergy_n laurence_n and_o peter_n to_o rome_n to_o be_v advertise_v amongst_o other_o thing_n what_o order_n manner_n and_o custom_n of_o mass_n it_o like_v s._n gregory_n the_o church_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n shall_v have_v hereunto_o that_o holy_a father_n answer_v that_o what_o he_o espy_v either_o in_o the_o roman_a or_o french_a or_o any_o other_o church_n that_o may_v be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o almighty_a god_n he_o shall_v choose_v out_o and_o gather_v together_o and_o commend_v the_o same_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n there_o to_o be_v leave_v in_o custom_n to_o continewe_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 27._o if_o it_o have_v then_o be_v think_v necessary_a the_o service_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o be_v in_o english_a or_o if_o it_o have_v be_v translate_v in_o to_o the_o english_a tongue_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o bede_n who_o declare_v all_o thing_n concern_v matter_n of_o religion_n so_o diligent_o special_o profess_v to_o write_v a_o ecclesiastical_a story_n will_v have_v pass_v over_o that_o in_o silence_n and_o if_o the_o mass_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o english_a tongue_n the_o monument_n and_o book_n so_o much_o multiply_v among_o the_o church_n will_v have_v remain_v in_o some_o place_n or_o other_o and_o doubteles_o some_o mention_n will_v have_v be_v make_v of_o the_o time_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o leave_v such_o kind_n of_o service_n and_o of_o begin_v the_o new_a latin_a service_n as_o certain_a of_o s._n gregory_n work_n turn_v in_o to_o english_a by_o bede_n himself_o have_v be_v keep_v so_o as_o they_o remain_v to_o this_o day_n s._n gregory_n himself_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o right_n good_a authority_n unto_o we_o that_o this_o land_n of_o england_n which_o he_o call_v britain_n in_o his_o time_n that_o be_v almost_o a_o thousand_o year_n past_a have_v the_o common_a prayer_n and_o service_n in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n without_o doubt_n in_o latin_a much_o in_o like_a sort_n as_o we_o have_v of_o old_a time_n have_v till_o now_o his_o word_n be_v these_o ecce_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la dominus_fw-la penè_fw-la cunctarum_fw-la iam_fw-la gentium_fw-la corda_fw-la penetravit_fw-la 6_o expositionis_fw-la in_o job_n li._n 27._o ca._n 6_o ecce_fw-la in_o una_fw-la fide_fw-la orientis_fw-la limitem_fw-la occidentisque_fw-la coniunxit_fw
among_o the_o unlearned_a people_n or_o any_o other_o alien_a or_o strange_a tongue_n but_o only_o and_o that_o by_o way_n of_o metaphor_n any_o manner_n of_o utterance_n whereby_o the_o sign_n of_o thing_n be_v pronounce_v before_o they_o be_v understand_v and_o by_o the_o spirit_n he_o understand_v not_o a_o noise_n of_o strange_a word_n after_o your_o strange_a interpretation_n but_o as_o it_o be_v here_o in_o a_o certain_a proper_a and_o peculiar_a manner_n take_v a_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n inferior_a to_o the_o mind_n which_o conceive_v the_o similitude_n of_o thing_n and_o understand_v they_o not_o and_o thing_n so_o utter_v be_v utter_v with_o the_o tongue_n and_o spirit_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o english_a or_o latin_a or_o any_o other_o language_n and_o sir_n although_o the_o people_n understand_v not_o in_o most_o exact_v wise_a what_o the_o priest_n say_v in_o the_o latin_a service_n yet_o have_v they_o commodity_n and_o profit_n thereby_o so_o far_o as_o it_o please_v god_n to_o accept_v the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n pronounce_v by_o the_o priest_n for_o they_o but_o s._n paul_n say_v they_o require_v that_o the_o people_n geve_v assent_v and_o comforme_v themselves_o unto_o the_o priest_n by_o answer_v amen_o to_o his_o prayer_n make_v in_o the_o congregation_n very_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v necessary_a when_o the_o faith_n be_v a_o learning_n and_o therefore_o the_o prayer_n be_v make_v then_o in_o a_o common_a tongue_n know_v to_o the_o people_n for_o cause_n of_o their_o further_a instruction_n who_o be_v of_o late_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o paynime_n make_v christian_n have_v need_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v teach_v but_o after_o that_o the_o faithful_a people_n be_v multiply_v and_o increace_v in_o great_a number_n and_o have_v be_v so_o well_o instruct_v in_o all_o point_n of_o religion_n as_o by_o their_o own_o accord_n they_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o minister_n at_o the_o common_a prayer_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n the_o service_n be_v set_v out_o in_o latin_a and_o it_o be_v think_v sufficient_a part_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o choir_n to_o answer_v for_o the_o whole_a people_n and_o this_o have_v be_v esteem_v for_o a_o more_o expedite_a and_o convenient_a order_n then_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o every_o nation_n i_o grant_v they_o can_v not_o say_v amen_o to_o the_o blessing_n or_o thankesgeving_a of_o the_o priest_n so_o well_o as_o if_o they_o understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n perfect_o yet_o they_o geve_v assent_v to_o it_o and_o ratify_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o do_v conform_v themselves_o unto_o the_o priest_n though_o not_o in_o special_a yet_o in_o general_a that_o be_v to_o wit_n though_o not_o in_o every_o particular_a sentence_n of_o praise_n and_o thankesgeving_a or_o in_o every_o several_a petition_n yet_o in_o the_o whole_a for_o if_o they_o come_v to_o church_n with_o a_o right_n and_o good_a intent_n as_o the_o simple_a do_v no_o less_o than_o the_o learned_a their_o desire_n be_v to_o render_v unto_o god_n glory_n praise_n and_o honour_n and_o to_o thank_v he_o for_o benefit_n receive_v and_o with_o all_o to_o obtain_v of_o he_o thing_n behofull_a for_o they_o in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o without_o doubt_n this_o godly_a affection_n of_o their_o mind_n be_v so_o acceptable_a to_o god_n as_o no_o understanding_n of_o word_n may_v be_v compare_v with_o it_o this_o requysite_a assent_n and_o conform_v of_o themselves_o to_o the_o priest_n they_o declare_v by_o sundry_a outward_a token_n and_o gesture_n as_o by_o stand_v up_o at_o the_o gospel_n and_o at_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o bow_v themselves_o down_o and_o adore_v at_o the_o sacrament_n by_o kneel_v at_o other_o time_n as_o when_o pardon_n and_o mercy_n be_v humble_o ask_v and_o by_o other_o like_a sign_n of_o devotion_n in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o service_n and_o whereas_o s._n paul_n seem_v to_o disallow_v pray_v with_o tongue_n in_o the_o common_a assemble_v because_o of_o want_n of_o edify_v and_o to_o esteem_v the_o utterance_n of_o fyve_o word_n or_o sentence_n with_o understanding_n of_o his_o meaning_n that_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v instruct_v thereby_o more_o than_o ten_o thousand_o word_n in_o a_o strange_a and_o unknowen_a tongue_n all_o this_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o state_n of_o that_o time_n which_o be_v much_o unlike_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v now_o in_o the_o tongue_n of_o the_o prayer_n which_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o be_v utter_o strange_a and_o unknowen_a and_o serve_v for_o a_o sign_n to_o the_o unbelever_n the_o latin_a tongue_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v not_o all_o together_o strange_a and_o unknowen_a for_o beside_o the_o priest_n in_o most_o place_n some_o of_o the_o rest_n have_v understanding_n of_o it_o more_o or_o less_o and_o now_o we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o such_o sign_n they_o need_v instruction_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o religion_n they_o be_v to_o be_v teach_v in_o all_o thing_n we_o come_v not_o to_o church_n special_o and_o chief_o to_o be_v thaught_v at_o the_o service_n but_o to_o pray_v and_o to_o be_v teach_v by_o preach_v their_o prayer_n be_v not_o vaileable_a for_o lack_v of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o be_v it_o to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n for_o increase_v of_o faith_n our_o faith_n will_v stand_v we_o in_o better_a stead_n if_o we_o geve_v ourselves_o to_o devout_a prayer_n they_z for_o lack_v of_o faith_n have_v need_n of_o interpretation_n both_o in_o prayer_n and_o also_o in_o preach_v and_o all_o other_o spiritual_a exercise_n we_o have_v sufficient_a instruction_n in_o the_o necessary_a rudimente_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o the_o rest_n have_v more_o need_n by_o earnest_n and_o fervent_a prayer_n to_o make_v suit_n unto_o god_n for_o a_o upright_o pure_a and_o holy_a life_n then_o to_o spend_v much_o time_n in_o hear_v for_o knowledge_n concern_v which_o thing_n chrysostome_n have_v this_o say_n profectò_fw-la si_fw-la orare_fw-la cum_fw-la diligentia_fw-la insuescas_fw-la 3._o contrà_fw-la anomaeo●_n homil_n 3._o nihil_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la tui_fw-la conserui_fw-la desideres_fw-la quum_fw-la ipse_fw-la deus_fw-la sine_fw-la ullo_fw-la interpret_v mentem_fw-la abundè_fw-la luce_fw-fr asficiat_a very_o if_o thou_o use_v to_o pray_v diligent_o there_o be_v nothing_o why_o thou_o shall_v desire_v teach_v of_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n see_v god_n himself_o do_v abundant_o lighten_v thy_o mind_n without_o any_o interpreter_n i_o will_v not_o here_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v lay_v to_o my_o charge_n the_o defence_n of_o ignorance_n as_o though_o i_o envy_a the_o people_n any_o godly_a knowledge_n i_o wish_v they_o to_o have_v all_o heavenly_a knowledge_n and_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n yea_o even_o with_o my_o very_a heart_n i_o wish_v with_o moses_n 11._o num._n 11._o quis_fw-la tribunt_fw-la ut_fw-la omnis_fw-la populus_fw-la prophetet_fw-la &_o det_fw-la dominus_fw-la illis_fw-la spiritum_fw-la suum_fw-la o_o that_o all_o the_o people_n can_v prophesy_v and_o be_v learn_v in_o god_n holy_a word_n and_o that_o our_o lord_n will_v geve_v they_o his_o spirit_n but_o all_o the_o common_a people_n to_o understand_v the_o priest_n at_o the_o service_n i_o think_v wise_a ad_fw-la godly_a man_n judge_v it_o not_o a_o thing_n so_o necessary_a as_o for_o the_o which_o the_o ancient_a order_n of_o the_o church_n with_o no_o little_a offence_n public_a and_o universal_a authority_n not_o consult_v shall_v be_v condemn_v break_a and_o quite_o abrogate_a by_o private_a advice_n of_o a_o few_o if_o default_n be_v in_o this_o befalse_a just_o find_v it_o be_v know_v to_o who_o the_o redress_n pertain_v concern_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n in_o all_o age_n the_o general_a council_n represent_v the_o universal_a church_n for_o all_o sore_n have_v ordain_v wholesome_a remedy_n where_o they_o be_v not_o hear_v 10._o luc._n 10._o of_o who_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o concern_v the_o service_n the_o new_a learned_a boldness_n be_v not_o so_o acceptable_a to_o god_n as_o the_o old_a simple_a humility_n it_o be_v good_a the_o people_n have_v humble_a and_o reverend_a heart_n understand_v the_o service_n i_o deny_v not_o yet_o all_o stand_v not_o in_o understanding_n s._n augustine_n say_v notable_o 4._o contrà_fw-la manichaeos_n epist_n fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 4._o turbam_fw-la non_fw-la intelligendi_fw-la vivacitas_fw-la sed_fw-la credendi_fw-la simplicitas_fw-la tutissimam_fw-la facit_fw-la that_o as_o for_o the_o common_a people_n it_o be_v not_o the_o quiknesse_n of_o understanding_n but_o the_o simplicity_n of_o beleve_v that_o make_v
heap_n of_o key_n psalmos_fw-la praesat_n in_o psalmos_fw-la that_o be_v to_o open_v the_o door_n of_o every_o house_n of_o a_o great_a city_n lay_v together_o among_o who_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o find_v which_o key_n serve_v which_o lock_n and_o without_o the_o right_a key_n no_o door_n can_v be_v open_v s._n augustine_n lyken_v the_o people_n of_o aphrica_n sing_v the_o psalm_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o to_o owselle_n popinjay_n raven_n pie_n and_o such_o other_o bird_n which_o be_v teach_v to_o sound_v they_o know_v not_o what_o and_o yet_o they_o understand_v the_o tongue_n they_o sing_v they_o in_o and_o therefore_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o learn_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o at_o his_o preach_n lest_o they_o shall_v sing_v not_o with_o human_a reason_n as_o be_v before_o recite_v but_o with_o voice_n only_o as_o bird_n do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereof_o the_o service_n consist_v be_v though_o not_o all_o together_o so_o obscure_a as_o the_o psalm_n yet_o very_o dark_a and_o hard_a then_o that_o the_o common_a people_n gross_a and_o simple_a wit_n may_v pierce_v the_o understanding_n of_o it_o by_o hear_v the_o same_o pronounce_v of_o the_o minister_n in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n and_o by_o this_o reason_n we_o shall_v have_v no_o service_n at_o all_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o default_n of_o understanding_n and_o whereas_o of_o the_o service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o people_n will_v frame_v lewd_a and_o perverse_a meaning_n of_o their_o own_o lewd_a sense_n so_o of_o the_o latin_a service_n they_o will_v make_v no_o construction_n either_o of_o false_a doctrine_n or_o of_o evil_a life_n and_o as_o the_o vulgar_a service_n pull_v their_o mind_n from_o private_a devotion_n to_o hear_v and_o not_o to_o pray_v to_o little_a benefit_n of_o knowledge_n for_o the_o obscurity_n of_o it_o so_o the_o latin_a geve_v they_o no_o such_o motion_n they_o occupy_v themselves_o while_o the_o priest_n pray_v for_o all_o and_o in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o in_o their_o private_a prayer_n all_o for_o all_o and_o every_o one_o for_o himself_o graeco_n such_o nation_n as_o use_v church_n service_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n continewe_n in_o schism_n in_o epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la graeco_n the_o nation_n that_o have_v ever_o have_v their_o service_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o people_n thereof_o have_v continue_a in_o schism_n error_n and_o certain_a judaical_a observance_n so_o as_o they_o have_v not_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o christian_n of_o moschovia_n of_o armenia_n of_o prester_n john_n his_o land_n in_o ethiopia_n bessarion_n ask_v by_o way_n of_o a_o question_n of_o the_o greek_n his_v country_n man_n what_o church_n that_o be_v against_o the_o which_o hell_n gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v answer_v himself_o and_o say_v aut_fw-la latina_n aut_fw-la greca_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tertia_fw-la enim_fw-la dari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la siquidem_fw-la aliae_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeresibus_fw-la sunt_fw-la plenae_fw-la quas_fw-la sancti_fw-la patres_fw-la &_o generales_fw-la synodi_fw-la condemnarunt_fw-la either_o it_o be_v the_o latin_a or_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o there_o be_v no_o thyrd_o that_o can_v be_v grant_v for_o all_o other_o church_n be_v full_a of_o heresy_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o general_a council_n have_v condemn_v wherefore_o of_o these_o church_n no_o example_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v for_o service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o neither_o of_o the_o church_n of_o russia_n and_o moravia_n and_o certain_a other_o to_o who_o above_o syx_n hundred_o year_n past_a it_o be_v grant_v to_o have_v the_o mass_n in_o the_o sclavons_a tongue_n through_o special_a licence_n thereto_o obtain_v of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a by_o cyrullus_n and_o methodius_n that_o first_o convert_v they_o to_o the_o faith_n which_o manner_n of_o service_n so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o be_v catholic_a for_o good_a cause_n have_v leave_v and_o use_v the_o latin_a as_o other_o latin_a church_n do_v concern_v the_o rest_n yet_o keep_v their_o sclavon_n tongue_n beside_o other_o error_n and_o defaulte_n for_o which_o they_o be_v not_o herein_o to_o be_v esteem_v worthy_a to_o be_v follow_v we_o may_v say_v of_o they_o the_o word_n of_o gregory_n nazianzene_n privilegia_fw-la paucorum_fw-la non_fw-la faciunt_fw-la legem_fw-la communem_fw-la the_o privilege_n of_o a_o few_o make_v not_o a_o thing_n lawful_a in_o common_a wherefore_o to_o conclude_v see_v in_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o any_o other_o then_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a tongue_n for_o that_o any_o man_n be_v able_a to_o show_v by_o good_a ptoufe_v and_o the_o same_o not_o understand_v of_o all_o people_n see_v the_o auctority_n by_o m._n juell_n allege_v import_v no_o necessary_a argument_n nor_o directe_v commandment_n of_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n but_o only_o of_o plain_a and_o open_o pronounce_v and_o that_o where_o the_o tongue_n of_o the_o service_n be_v understand_v see_v the_o church_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n have_v their_o service_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n to_o they_o unknowen_a well_o near_o a_o thousand_o year_n past_a see_v the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n either_o pertain_v not_o to_o this_o purpose_n or_o if_o it_o be_v so_o grant_v for_o the_o diversity_n of_o state_n of_o that_o and_o of_o this_o our_o time_n it_o permit_v a_o diversity_n of_o observation_n in_o this_o behalf_n though_o some_o likeness_n and_o resemblance_n yet_o reserve_v see_v great_a profit_n come_v to_o the_o faithful_a people_n have_v it_o so_o as_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o final_o see_v the_o example_n rehearse_v herein_o to_o be_v follow_v be_v of_o small_a authority_n in_o respect_n either_o of_o antiquity_n or_o of_o true_a religion_n as_o the_o bold_a assertion_n of_o m._n juell_n be_v plain_o disprove_v so_o the_o old_a order_n of_o the_o latin_a service_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n whereof_o england_n be_v a_o province_n be_v not_o rash_o to_o be_v condemn_v special_o whereas_o being_n first_o commit_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o country_n and_o the_o first_o preacher_n of_o the_o faith_n here_o it_o have_v be_v auctorise_v by_o continuance_n almost_o of_o a_o thousand_o year_n without_o control_n or_o gaynesay_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o wealth_n of_o the_o people_n and_o procure_v of_o help_n from_o heaven_n always_o to_o this_o land_n and_o to_o add_v hereunto_o this_o much_o last_o of_o all_o though_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v good_a the_o service_n be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o in_o english_a for_o our_o country_n of_o england_n yet_o doubteles_o good_a man_n and_o zelouse_a keper_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n will_v never_o allow_v the_o service_n devyse_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n now_o restore_v again_o not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o tongue_n it_o be_v in_o as_o for_o the_o order_n itself_o and_o disposition_n of_o it_o lack_v some_o thing_n necessary_a and_o have_v some_o other_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o call_v a_o universal_a bishop_n or_o the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n article_n 4._o by_o what_o name_n so_o ever_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v within_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n this_o be_v clear_a that_o his_o primacy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v supreme_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o and_o above_o all_o bishop_n and_o chief_a government_n of_o all_o christ_n flock_n in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o faith_n and_o christian_a religion_n be_v then_o acknowlege_v and_o confess_v which_o thing_n be_v so_o whether_o then_o he_o be_v call_v by_o either_o of_o those_o name_n that_o you_o deny_v or_o no_o it_o be_v not_o of_o great_a importance_n and_o yet_o for_o the_o one_o of_o they_o somewhat_o and_o for_o the_o other_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o good_a authority_n may_v be_v allege_v but_o thereof_o hereafter_o now_o concern_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o this_o article_n which_o be_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n peter_n successor_n first_o it_o have_v be_v set_v up_o and_o ordain_v by_o god_n so_o as_o it_o stand_v in_o force_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la by_o god_n law_n and_o not_o only_o by_o man_n law_n the_o scripture_n leadinge_n thereto_o next_o commend_v to_o the_o world_n by_o decree_n of_o council_n and_o confirm_v by_o edict_n of_o christian_a emperor_n for_o avoidinge_v of_o schism_n furthermore_o confess_v and_o witness_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n again_o find_v to_o be_v necessary_a by_o reason_n final_o use_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o evente_a of_o thing_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n for_o proufe_v of_o
all_o this_o so_o much_o may_v easy_o be_v say_v as_o shall_v serve_v to_o a_o whole_a volume_n but_o in_o this_o treatise_n seek_v to_o avoid_v prolixity_n have_v purpose_v to_o say_v somewhat_o to_o this_o number_n of_o the_o other_o article_n and_o know_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o primacy_n to_o be_v already_o large_o and_o learned_o handle_v of_o other_o will_v but_o trip_v as_o it_o be_v light_o over_o at_o this_o time_n and_o not_o set_v my_o fast_a foot_n in_o the_o deep_a debate_n and_o treat_v of_o it_o 16._o the_o pope_n primacy_n not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n ordinance_n the_o first_o proufe_v of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n scripture_n expound_v matth._n 16._o first_o as_o concern_v the_o right_a of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n by_o god_n law_n by_o these_o ancient_a autority_n it_o have_v be_v avouch_v anacletus_fw-la that_o holy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n s._n peter_n scholar_n and_o of_o he_o consecrate_a priest_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n write_v thus_o in_o novo_fw-la testamento_fw-la post_fw-la christum_n etc_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o order_n of_o priest_n begin_v after_o our_o lord_n christ_n of_o peter_n because_o to_o he_o bishopric_n be_v first_o give_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n where_o as_o our_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o unto_o thou_o i_o will_v geve_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n wherefore_o this_o peter_n receive_v of_o our_o lord_n first_o of_o all_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o to_o louse_n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o bring_v people_n to_o the_o faith_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o preach_n as_o for_o the_o other_o apostle_n they_o receive_v honour_n and_o power_n in_o like_a fellowship_n with_o he_o and_o will_v he_o to_o be_v their_o prince_n or_o chief_a governor_n in_o a_o other_o epistle_n to_o all_o bishop_n allege_v the_o same_o text_n for_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n speak_v of_o the_o disposition_n of_o church_n commit_v to_o patriarch_n and_o primate_fw-la say_v thus_o most_o plain_o this_o holy_a ad_fw-la apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n have_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n not_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o of_o our_o lord_n saviour_n himself_o and_o have_v get_v the_o preeminence_n of_o power_n over_o all_o church_n and_o over_o the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christian_a people_n even_o so_o as_o he_o say_v to_o bless_a peter_n th'apostle_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n etc_n s._n gregory_n write_v to_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n against_o john_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n ambitious_o claim_v and_o usurp_v the_o name_n of_o a_o universal_a bishop_n prove_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v in_o peter_n chaier_n to_o be_v primate_n and_o to_o have_v charge_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o scripture_n thus_o cunctis_fw-la evangelium_fw-la scientibus_fw-la liquet_fw-la etc_n 32._o epist_n 32._o it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o that_o know_v the_o gospel_n that_o the_o cure_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o the_o holy_a apostle_n peter_n prince_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n for_o to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v peter_n 22._o joan._n 21._o luc._n 22._o love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v behold_v satan_n have_v desire_v to_o syfte_fw-mi you_o as_o it_o be_v wheat_n and_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o thou_o be_v once_o convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o be_v peter_n 26_o matth._n 26_o and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o unto_o the_o i_o will_v geve_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o what_o so_o ever_o thou_o bynde_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o what_o so_o ever_o thou_o lowse_v on_o earth_n shable_a lowse_v also_o in_o heaven_n behold_v he_o receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n committitur_fw-la cura_fw-la ei_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o principatus_fw-la committitur_fw-la the_o power_n of_o bind_n and_o louse_v be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o principality_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o thus_o far_o gregory_n but_o because_o our_o adversary_n though_o without_o just_a cause_n refuse_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o article_n as_o unlawful_a witness_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n be_v they_o never_o so_o holy_a martyr_n or_o learned_a confessor_n they_o may_v understand_v we_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v sundry_a other_o authority_n to_o the_o confirmation_n hereof_o that_o be_v above_o all_o exception_n s._n cyprian_n declare_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n christ_n vicarie_n in_o earth_n to_o be_v cause_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n write_v thus_o to_o cornelius_n pope_n and_o martyr_n neque_fw-la enim_fw-la aliunde_fw-la haereses_fw-la obortae_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc_n neither_o have_v heresy_n or_o schism_n rise_v of_o any_o other_o occasion_n then_o of_o that_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n be_v not_o obey_v and_o that_o one_o priest_n for_o the_o time_n in_o the_o church_n and_o one_o judge_n for_o the_o time_n in_o stead_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o think_v upon_o to_o who_o if_o the_o whole_a brotherhed_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a number_n of_o christian_a people_n which_o be_v brethren_n together_o and_o be_v so_o call_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n will_v be_v obedient_a according_a to_o god_n teachinge_n divina_fw-la secundum_fw-la magisteria_fw-la divina_fw-la then_o no_o man_n will_v make_v ado_n against_o the_o college_n of_o priest_n no_o man_n will_v make_v himself_o judge_v not_o of_o the_o bishop_n now_o but_o of_o god_n after_o god_n judgement_n after_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o people_n declare_v by_o their_o voice_n at_o the_o election_n after_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o felowbishop_n no_o man_n through_o breach_n of_o unity_n and_o strife_n will_v divide_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n no_o man_n stand_v in_o his_o own_o conceit_n and_o swell_a with_o pride_n will_v set_v up_o by_o himself_o abroad_o without_o the_o church_n a_o new_a heresy_n of_o all_o other_o authority_n that_o of_o athanasius_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypte_n and_o libya_n gather_v together_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o alexandria_n be_v to_o be_v regard_v who_o make_v humble_a suit_n to_o felix_n then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o aid_n and_o succour_v against_o the_o arianes_n through_o the_o whole_a epistle_n confess_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o that_o apostolic_a see_v utter_v these_o very_a word_n vestrae_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la sedis_fw-la imploramus_fw-la auxilium_fw-la etc_n conciliorum_fw-la in_o primo_fw-la tomo_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la we_o humble_o beseech_v you_o of_o the_o help_n of_o your_o apostolic_a see_n because_o as_o very_o we_o believe_v god_n have_v not_o despise_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n offer_v up_o to_o he_o with_o tear_n but_o have_v constitute_v and_o place_v you_o &_o your_o predecessor_n who_o be_v apostolic_a prelate_n in_o the_o high_a tower_n or_o supreme_a state_n constituit_fw-la in_o summitatis_fw-la arce_fw-la constituit_fw-la and_o command_v they_o to_o have_v cure_n and_o charge_n of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o intent_n you_o help_v and_o succour_v we_o and_o that_o defend_v we_o as_o to_o who_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n be_v commit_v you_o forslow_v not_o through_o negligence_n to_o delyver_v we_o from_o our_o enemy_n now_o if_o the_o apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n have_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n and_o preeminence_n of_o power_n over_o all_o church_n and_o over_o the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christian_a people_n of_o our_o lord_n saviour_n himself_o as_o anacletus_fw-la say_v if_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o that_o know_v the_o gospel_n that_o the_o cure_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v be_v commit_v to_o the_o holy_a apostle_n peter_n prince_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o gregory_n witness_v if_o the_o whole_a brotherhed_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o christian_a folk_n ought_v to_o obey_v the_o one_o high_a priest_n or_o bishop_n of_o god_n and_o the_o one_o judge_n that_o be_v christ_n vicar_n or_o in_o the_o steed_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o time_n according_a to_o the_o precept_n and_o teachinge_n of_o god_n as_o cyprian_n write_v if_o it_o be_v god_n that_o have_v place_v and_o ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o high_a state_n of_o the_o church_n as_o athanasius_n with_o all_o the_o father_n of_o that_o alexandrine_n council_n record_v if_o this_o i_o say_v be_v true_a then_o be_v
it_o easy_o see_v upon_o how_o good_a ground_n this_o doctrine_n stand_v whereby_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o primacy_n have_v his_o force_n by_o god_n law_n and_o not_o only_o by_o man_n law_n much_o less_o by_o unjust_a usurpation_n the_o scripture_n by_o which_o as_o well_o these_o as_o all_o other_o holy_a and_o learned_a father_n be_v leadde_a to_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v partly_o such_o as_z anacletus_fw-la and_o gregory_n here_o allege_v and_o cyprian_a mean_v as_o it_o appear_v by_o his_o three_o treatise_n de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la and_o sundry_a mo_z of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o to_o the_o learned_a be_v know_v of_o which_o to_o treat_v here_o large_o and_o piththe_o as_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o matter_n require_v at_o this_o time_n i_o have_v no_o leisure_n neither_o if_o i_o have_v yet_o may_v i_o convenient_o perform_v it_o in_o this_o treatise_n which_o otherwise_o will_v amount_v to_o a_o sufficient_a bigness_n and_o that_o matter_n thorough_o handle_v will_v fill_v a_o right_n great_a volume_n wherefore_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o credit_n of_o these_o worthy_a father_n who_o so_o understand_v the_o scripture_n as_o thereof_o they_o be_v persuade_v the_o primacy_n to_o be_v attribute_v to_o peter_n successor_n by_o god_n himself_o i_o will_v proceed_v keep_v my_o prefix_a order_n council_n the_o 2._o proufe_v council_n whereas_o the_o preeminence_n of_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o special_a and_o singular_a privilege_n god_n have_v grant_v be_v commend_v to_o the_o world_n by_o many_o and_o sundry_a council_n for_o avoid_v of_o tediousness_n i_o will_v rehearse_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o few_o among_o the_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o three_o hundred_o and_o eighten_v bishop_n at_o the_o nicene_n council_n which_o be_v in_o number_n 70._o and_o all_o burn_v by_o heretic_n in_o the_o east_n church_n save_o xx_o and_o yet_o the_o whole_a number_n be_v keep_v diligent_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o original_n itself_o send_v to_o sylvester_n the_o bishop_n there_o from_o the_o council_n subscribe_v with_o the_o say_v 318._o father_n hand_n dogmat_fw-la vide_fw-la francisc_n turrianun_n lib._n 3._o carat_n dogmat_fw-la the_o 44._o canon_n which_o be_v of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o patriarch_n over_o the_o metropolitanes_n and_o bishop_n and_o of_o the_o metropolitan_a over_o bishop_n in_o the_o end_n have_v this_o decree_n ut_fw-la autem_fw-la cunctis_fw-la ditionis_fw-la svae_fw-la nationibus_fw-la etc_n as_o the_o patriarch_n bear_v rule_v over_o all_o nation_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o geve_v law_n to_o they_o and_z as_z peter_z christ_n vicar_n at_o the_o beginning_n set_v in_o authority_n over_o religion_n over_o the_o church_n and_o over_o all_o other_o thing_n pertain_v to_o christ_n be_v master_n and_o ruler_n of_o christian_a prince_n province_n and_o of_o all_o nation_n so_o he_o who_o principality_n or_o chiefty_a be_v at_o rome_n like_v unto_o peter_n and_o equal_a in_o authority_n obtain_v the_o rule_n and_o soverainetie_n over_o all_o patriake_n after_o a_o sue_v word_n it_o follow_v there_o if_o any_o man_n repine_v against_o this_o statute_n or_o dare_v resist_v it_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n he_o be_v accurse_v julius_n that_o worthy_a bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o his_o epistle_n that_o he_o write_v to_o the_o 90._o ariane_n bishop_n assemble_v in_o council_n at_o antioch_n against_o athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n reprove_v they_o for_o their_o unjust_a treat_v of_o he_o say_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n then_o fresh_a in_o their_o remembrance_n that_o they_o command_v non_fw-la debere_fw-la praeter_fw-la sententiam_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la concilia_fw-la celebrari_fw-la nec_fw-la episcopos_fw-la damnari_fw-la that_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n neither_o council_n ought_v to_o be_v keep_v nor_o bishop_n condemn_v again_o that_o nothing_o be_v decree_v without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n cui_fw-la haec_fw-la &_o maiora_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la negotia_fw-la tam_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la domino_fw-la quàm_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la universorum_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la fratribus_fw-la speciali_fw-la privilegio_fw-la contradita_fw-la sunt_fw-la to_o who_o these_o and_o other_o the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v by_o special_a privilege_n as_o well_o by_o our_o lord_n himself_o as_o by_o all_o our_o brethren_n of_o the_o whole_a universal_a council_n among_o other_o principalle_v point_n which_o he_o recite_v in_o that_o epistle_n out_o of_o the_o nicene_n council_n canon_n this_o be_v one_o ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la etc_n that_o all_o bishop_n who_o sustain_v wrong_v in_o weighty_a cause_n so_o often_o as_o need_n shall_v require_v make_v their_o appeal_n free_o to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o fly_v to_o it_o for_o succour_n as_o to_o their_o mother_n that_o from_o thence_o they_o may_v be_v charitable_o sustain_v defend_v and_o deliver_v to_o the_o disposition_n of_o which_o see_v the_o ancient_a authority_n of_o th'apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n and_o of_o the_o canon_n have_v reserve_v all_o weighty_a or_o great_a ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n athanasius_n and_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o bishop_n of_o egypte_n thebaida_n and_o libya_n assemble_v together_o in_o council_n at_o alexandria_n complain_v in_o their_o epistle_n to_o felix_n the_o pope_n of_o the_o great_a injury_n and_o grief_n they_o sustain_v at_o the_o arianes_n allege_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n touch_v the_o supreme_a authority_n and_o power_n of_o that_o see_v apostolic_a over_o all_o other_o bishop_n similiter_fw-la &_o à_fw-la supradictis_fw-la patribus_fw-la est_fw-la definitum_fw-la consonanter_fw-la etc_n likewise_o say_v they_o it_o have_v be_v determine_v by_o common_a assent_n of_o the_o foresay_a father_n of_o nice_a that_o if_o any_o of_o the_o bishop_n suspect_v the_o metropolitan_a or_o their_o felowbishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n or_o the_o judge_n that_o then_o they_o make_v their_o appeal_n to_o your_o holy_a see_v of_o rome_n to_o who_o by_o our_o lord_n himself_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o louse_n 16._o matt._n 16._o by_o special_a privilege_n above_o other_o have_v be_v grant_v this_o much_o allege_v out_o os_fw-la the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n gather_v partly_o out_o of_o julius_n epistle_n who_o write_v to_o they_o that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o make_n of_o they_o which_o take_v away_o all_o suspicion_n of_o untruth_n and_o partly_o out_o of_o athanasius_n and_o other_o that_o be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o same_o council_n for_o further_a declaration_n of_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v easy_a here_o to_o allege_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 9_o ca._n 4._o ca._n 9_o certain_a council_n of_o aphrica_n yea_o some_o council_n also_o hold_v by_o heretic_n and_o sundry_a other_o but_o such_o store_n of_o auctority_n common_o know_v these_o may_v suffice_v the_o christian_a prince_n that_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v with_o their_o proclamation_n and_o edict_n emperor_n the_o 3._o proufe_v edict_n of_o emperor_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o canon_n concern_v the_o pope_n primacy_n and_o give_v not_o to_o he_o first_o that_o authority_n as_o the_o adversary_n do_v untrue_o report_n be_v justinian_n and_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n the_o word_n of_o justinianes_n edicte_n be_v these_o do_fw-mi in_o authent_n de_fw-fr eccles_n do_fw-mi sancimus_fw-la secundum_fw-la canonum_fw-la definitiones_fw-la sanctissimum_fw-la senioris_fw-la romae_fw-la papam_fw-la primum_fw-la esse_fw-la omnium_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la we_o ordain_v according_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o canon_n that_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o elder_a rome_n be_v forme_v and_o chief_a of_o all_o priest_n about_o three_o score_n and_o ten_o year_n after_o justinian_n phocas_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o time_n of_o bonifacius_n to_o repress_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 36._o lib._n 4._o historiae_fw-la longobardicae_fw-la cap._n 36._o as_o paulus_n diaconus_fw-la write_v who_o vain_o and_o as_o gregory_n say_v contrary_a to_o our_o lord_n teachinge_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o for_o that_o wicked_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o name_n of_o the_o universal_a or_o ecumenical_a bishop_n and_o write_v himself_o chief_a of_o all_o bishop_n make_v the_o like_a decree_n and_o ordinance_n that_o the_o holy_a see_v of_o the_o roman_a and_o apostolic_a church_n shall_v be_v hold_v for_o the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n doctoures_fw-la the_o 4._o proufe_v doctoures_fw-la of_o the_o doctor_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v very_o this_o matter_n be_v so_o often_o and_o so_o common_o report_v of_o they_o that_o their_o sainge_n lay_v together_o will_v scant_o be_v
believe_v one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n therefore_o i_o say_v it_o have_v need_n of_o one_o prince_n and_o ruler_n to_o be_v keep_v and_o hold_v in_o if_o it_o be_v other_o wise_a unity_n must_v needs_o forthwith_o be_v sparkle_v and_o break_v a_o sunder_o and_o therefore_o it_o behove_v that_o the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v commit_v to_o one_o and_o whereas_o these_o gospeler_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o be_v one_o keep_v the_o church_n in_o unity_n we_o answer_v that_o although_o the_o church_n be_v first_o and_o principal_o govern_v by_o christ_n as_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v yet_o god_n high_a goodness_n have_v so_o ordain_v as_o each_o thing_n may_v be_v provide_v for_o according_a to_o his_o own_o condition_n and_o nature_n therefore_o whereas_o mankind_n depend_v most_o of_o sense_n and_o receive_v all_o learning_n and_o institution_n of_o sensible_a thing_n therefore_o it_o have_v need_n of_o a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o governor_n and_o ruler_n who_o it_o may_v perceive_v by_o outward_a sense_n and_o even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n by_o which_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o in_o consideration_n of_o man_n nature_n be_v so_o make_v of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v be_v ordain_v in_o thing_n sensible_a therefore_o it_o be_v behooveful_a this_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v commit_v to_o one_o man_n which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v peter_n and_o afterward_o each_o successor_n of_o peter_n for_o his_o time_n as_o be_v afore_o declare_v neither_o can_v this_o one_o man_n have_v this_o power_n of_o any_o consent_n or_o company_n of_o man_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a he_o have_v it_o of_o god_n for_o to_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n it_o pertain_v to_o none_o other_o then_o to_o christ_n for_o where_o as_o the_o church_n and_o all_o that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n be_v christ_n as_o well_o for_o other_o cause_n as_o special_o for_o that_o we_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o great_a price_n even_o with_o his_o blood_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v 3._o 1._o cor._n 3._o how_o can_v it_o perteine_v to_o any_o other_o then_o to_o he_o to_o institute_v and_o appoint_v to_o himself_o a_o vicar_n that_o be_v one_z to_o do_v his_o steed_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v except_o we_o will_v wicked_o grant_v that_o god_n providence_n have_v lack_v or_o do_v lack_n to_o his_o church_n for_o love_n of_o which_o he_o have_v give_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v never_o to_o forgete_v so_o as_o the_o woman_n can_v not_o forgete_v the_o child_n she_o bear_v in_o her_o womb_n reason_n may_v soon_o induce_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o to_o one_o man_n one_o bishop_n the_o chief_a and_o high_a of_o all_o bishop_n the_o successor_n of_o peter_n the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o god_n have_v be_v defer_v for_o else_o if_o god_n have_v ordain_v that_o in_o in_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v sundry_a head_n and_o ruler_n and_o none_o constitute_v to_o be_v over_o other_o but_o all_o of_o equal_a power_n each_o one_o among_o their_o people_n then_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o have_v set_v up_o so_o many_o church_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v governor_n and_o so_o he_o shall_v appear_v to_o have_v bring_v in_o among_o his_o faithful_a people_n that_o unruly_a confusion_n the_o destruction_n of_o all_o common_a weal_n so_o much_o abhor_v of_o prince_n which_o the_o greek_n call_v anarchian_n which_o be_v a_o state_n for_o lack_v of_o order_n in_o governor_n without_o any_o government_n at_o all_o which_o thing_n since_o that_o the_o wise_a and_o politic_a man_n of_o this_o world_n do_v shun_v and_o detest_v in_o the_o government_n of_o these_o earthly_a kingdom_n as_o most_o perniciouse_a and_o hurtful_a to_o attribute_v to_o the_o high_a wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o to_o our_o lord_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o auctor_fw-la of_o the_o most_o ordinate_a disposition_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o in_o heaven_n it_o be_v heinous_a and_o profane_a impiety_n wherefore_o if_o the_o state_n of_o a_o kingdom_n can_v not_o continue_v safe_a onlesse_a one_o have_v power_n to_o rule_v how_o shall_v not_o the_o church_n spread_v so_o far_o abroad_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o great_a disorder_n corruption_n and_o utter_a destruction_n if_o as_o occasion_n shall_v be_v give_v among_o so_o great_a strife_n and_o debate_n of_o man_n among_o so_o many_o fyerbrande_n of_o discord_n toss_v to_o and_o fro_o by_o the_o devil_n enemy_n of_o unity_n there_o be_v not_o one_o head_n and_o ruler_n of_o all_o to_o be_v consult_v of_o all_o to_o be_v hear_v of_o all_o to_o be_v follow_v and_o obey_v if_o strife_n and_o contention_n be_v stir_v about_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o controversy_n happen_v to_o rise_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v it_o not_o be_v necessary_a there_o be_v one_o supreme_a judge_n to_o who_o sentence_n the_o party_n may_v stand_v if_o need_n require_v as_o it_o have_v be_v often_o see_v that_o general_a council_n be_v keep_v how_o can_v the_o bishop_n to_o who_o that_o matter_n belong_v be_v bring_v together_o but_o by_o commandment_n of_o one_o head_n governor_n who_o they_o owe_v their_o obedience_n unto_o for_o else_o be_v summon_v perhaps_o they_o will_v not_o come_v final_o how_o shall_v the_o contumacy_n and_o pertinacie_n of_o mischevous_a person_n be_v repress_v special_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v at_o descension_n with_o in_o themselves_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o supreme_a power_n who_o towards_o some_o may_v use_v the_o rod_n towards_o other_o some_o the_o spirit_n of_o lenity_n with_o such_o discrete_a temperament_n as_o malice_n be_v vanquish_v right_o defend_v and_o concord_n procure_v lest_o if_o the_o small_a spark_n of_o strife_n be_v not_o quench_v by_o authority_n at_o the_o beginning_n at_o length_n a_o great_a flame_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n flash_n abroad_o to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o a_o multitude_n therefore_o as_o there_o be_v one_o body_n of_o christ_n one_o flock_n one_o church_n even_o so_o be_v there_o one_o head_n of_o that_o his_o mystical_a body_n one_o shepherd_n and_o one_o chief_a servant_n make_v steward_n overseer_n and_o ruler_n over_o christ_n household_n in_o his_o absence_n until_o his_o come_n again_o syxfolde_a the_o 6._o proufe_v practise_v of_o the_o church_n syxfolde_a but_o here_o perhaps_o some_o will_v say_v it_o can_v not_o appear_v by_o the_o evente_a of_o thing_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v this_o supreme_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o over_o all_o christ_n flock_n in_o matter_n touch_v faith_n and_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a very_o who_o so_o ever_o peruse_v the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n and_o view_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o all_o time_n and_o age_n can_v not_o but_o confess_v this_o to_o be_v most_o evident_a and_o here_o i_o may_v allege_v first_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n declare_v that_o peter_n practise_v this_o preeminence_n among_o the_o disciple_n at_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o they_o yield_v the_o same_o as_o of_o right_a appertein_v unto_o he_o 1._o act._n 1._o as_o when_o he_o first_o and_o only_o move_v they_o to_o choose_v one_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o judas_n and_o demean_v himself_o as_o the_o chief_a autctor_n of_o all_o that_o be_v do_v therein_o when_o he_o make_v answer_v for_o all_o 2._o act._n 2._o at_o what_o time_n they_o be_v gase_v and_o wonder_v at_o and_o of_o some_o mockte_n as_o be_v drunken_a with_o new_a wine_n for_o that_o in_o the_o fistith_n day_n they_o speak_v with_o tongue_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n when_o he_o use_v that_o dreadful_a severity_n in_o punish_v the_o falsehood_n 5._o act._n 5._o and_o hypocrisy_n of_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n his_o wife_n 15._o act._n 15._o when_o variance_n be_v rise_v about_o the_o observation_n of_o certain_a point_n of_o moses_n law_n he_o as_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n say_v his_o mind_n before_o all_o other_o among_o many_o other_o place_n leave_v out_o for_o brevity_n that_o be_v not_o of_o least_o weight_n that_o paul_n be_v return_v to_o damascus_n out_o of_o arabia_n 1_o galat._n 1_o after_o three_o year_n go_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v peter_n and_o abode_n with_o he_o fiften_v day_n but_o because_o our_o adversary_n do_v wreath_n and_o wreste_n the_o scripture_n be_v they_o never_o so_o plain_a by_o there_o private_a and_o strange_a construction_n to_o a_o understanding_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o will_v refer_v the_o reader_n for_o further_a proufe_v of_o this_o matter_n to_o the_o story_n bear_v faithful_a witness_n of_o the_o
whole_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n in_o which_o story_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v plain_o report_v to_o have_v be_v such_o as_o thereby_o the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n successor_n may_v seem_v to_o all_o man_n sufficient_o declare_v for_o peruse_v the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n with_o write_n of_o the_o father_n beside_o many_o other_o thing_n pertain_v hereto_o we_o find_v these_o practice_n for_o declaration_n of_o this_o special_a authority_n and_o power_n first_o that_o bishop_n of_o every_o nation_n have_v make_v their_o appeal_n in_o their_o weighty_a affair_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o always_o have_v sue_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o well_o for_o succour_v and_o help_v against_o violence_n injury_n &_o oppression_n as_o for_o redress_v of_o other_o disorder_n also_o that_o the_o malice_n of_o wicked_a person_n have_v be_v repress_v and_o chastise_v of_o that_o authority_n by_o excommunication_n eiection_n and_o expulsion_n out_o of_o their_o dignity_n and_o room_n and_o by_o other_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n furthermore_o that_o the_o ordination_n and_o election_n of_o bishop_n of_o all_o province_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n beside_o this_o that_o the_o approve_v and_o disallow_v of_o council_n have_v pertein_v to_o he_o item_n that_o bishop_n wrongful_o condemn_v and_o deprive_v by_o council_n by_o he_o have_v be_v assoil_v and_o restore_v to_o their_o church_n again_o last_o that_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n after_o long_a strife_n and_o contention_n have_v at_o length_n upon_o better_a advice_n ben_fw-mi reconcily_v unto_o he_o again_o first_o pope_n appellation_n the_o pope_n for_o the_o appellation_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a beside_o many_o oher_z we_o have_v the_o know_v example_n of_o athanasius_n that_o worthy_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o light_o of_o the_o world_n who_o have_v sustain_v great_a and_o fundry_a wrong_n at_o the_o arianes_n appeal_v first_o to_o julius_n the_o pope_n and_o after_o his_o death_n to_o felix_n of_o chrisostome_n who_o appeal_v to_o innocentius_n against_o the_o violence_n of_o theophilus_n of_o theodoritus_n who_o appeal_v to_o leo._n neither_o make_v bishop_n only_o their_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o their_o delegate_n but_o also_o in_o certain_a case_n be_v cite_v appear_v before_o he_o in_o their_o own_o person_n which_o be_v plain_o gather_v of_o theodoritus_n his_o ecclesiastical_a story_n who_o write_v thus_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a pillour_n of_o the_o arianes_n and_o they_o that_o join_v with_o he_o in_o that_o faction_n false_o accuse_v athanasius_n to_o julius_n the_o b._n of_o rome_n julius_n follow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n command_v they_o to_o come_v to_o rome_n and_o cause_v the_o reverend_a athanasius_n to_o be_v cite_v to_o judgement_n regulariter_fw-la after_o the_o order_n of_o the_o canon_n he_o come_v the_o false_a accuser_n go_v not_o to_o rome_n know_v right_a well_o that_o their_o forge_a lie_n may_v easy_o be_v deprehend_v in_o the_o cause_n and_o defence_n of_o john_n chrysostome_n these_o bishop_n come_v from_o constantinople_n to_o innocentius_n the_o pope_n pansophus_fw-la b._n of_o pisidia_n pappus_n of_o syria_n demetrius_n of_o the_o second_o galatia_n and_o eugenius_n of_o phrygia_n these_o be_v suitor_n for_o chrysostome_n he_o himself_o treat_v his_o matter_n with_o innocentius_n by_o write_v in_o his_o epistle_n among_o other_o thing_n he_o write_v thus_o lest_o this_o outrageous_a confusion_n run_v over_o all_o and_o bear_v rule_v every_o where_n write_v i_o pray_v you_o and_o determine_v by_o your_o authority_n such_o wicked_a act_n do_v in_o our_o absence_n and_o when_o we_o withdraw_v not_o ourselves_o from_o judgement_n to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n as_o by_o their_o own_o nature_n true_o they_o be_v voy_v and_o utter_o none_o furthermore_o who_o have_v commit_v these_o evilles_n put_v you_o they_o under_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o for_o we_o since_o that_o we_o be_v innocent_a neither_o convicte_n neither_o find_v in_o any_o default_n nor_o prove_v gyltie_n of_o any_o crime_n geve_v commandment_n that_o we_o be_v restore_v to_o our_o church_n again_o that_o we_o may_v enjoy_v the_o accustom_a charity_n and_o peace_n with_o our_o brethren_n innocentius_n after_o that_o he_o understand_v the_o whole_a matter_n pronounce_v and_o decree_v the_o judgement_n of_o theophilus_n that_o be_v against_o chrysostome_n to_o be_v voyed_z and_o of_o no_o force_n this_o whole_a tragedy_n be_v at_o large_a set_v forth_o by_o palladius_n b._n of_o helenopolis_n in_o vita_fw-la joannis_n chrysostomi_n who_o live_v at_o that_o tyme._n by_o this_o appeal_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o by_o the_o whole_a handle_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o special_o by_o the_o purporte_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o innocentius_n the_o superiority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v evident_o acknowlege_v and_o so_o be_v it_o plain_o confess_v by_o athanasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o egipte_n thebais_n and_o libya_n assemble_v in_o council_n at_o alexandria_n by_o these_o word_n of_o their_o epistle_n to_o felix_n vestrun_v est_fw-la enim_fw-la nobis_fw-la manum_fw-la porrigere_fw-la etc_n it_o be_v your_o part_n say_v they_o to_o stretch_v forth_o your_o help_a hand_n unto_o we_o because_o we_o be_v commit_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o defend_v we_o and_o deliver_v we_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o seek_v help_n of_o you_o and_o to_o obey_v your_o commandment_n and_o a_o little_a after_o for_o we_o know_v that_o you_o bear_v the_o cure_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o special_o of_o bishop_n who_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o contemplation_n and_o speculation_n be_v call_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o always_o the_o prelate_n of_o your_o see_n first_o the_o apostle_n than_o their_o successor_n have_v do_v theodoritus_n that_o learned_a b._n of_o cyrus_n beside_o the_o epistle_n he_o write_v to_o leo_n for_o succour_n and_o help_v in_o his_o trouble_n in_o a_o other_o that_o he_o write_v to_o renatus_n a_o priest_n near_o about_o leo_n say_v thus_o spoliarunt_fw-la i_o sacerdotio_fw-la etc_n they_o have_v violent_o rob_v i_o of_o my_o bishopric_n they_o have_v cast_v i_o forth_o of_o the_o city_n neither_o have_v reverence_v my_o age_n spend_v in_o religion_n nor_o my_o hoar_a hair_n wherefore_o i_o beseech_v thou_o that_o thou_o persuade_v the_o most_o holy_a archebishop_n he_o mean_v leo_n to_o use_v his_o apostolic_a authority_n and_o to_o command_v we_o to_o come_v unto_o your_o council_n or_o consistory_n for_o this_o holy_a see_n hold_v the_o rudther_n and_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n partly_o for_o other_o respect_n but_o special_o for_o that_o it_o have_v evermore_o continue_a clear_a from_o stintche_n of_o heresy_n and_o that_o none_o ever_o sit_v in_o it_o who_o be_v of_o contrary_a opinion_n but_o rather_o have_v ever_o keep_v the_o apostolic_a grace_n undefyled_a in_o which_o word_n of_o theodoritus_n this_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v mark_v that_o the_o holy_a see_v of_o rome_n as_o he_o say_v have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o all_o the_o world_n most_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o it_o be_v never_o infect_v with_o heresy_n as_o all_o other_o church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v for_o which_o cause_n that_o see_v have_v ever_o hitherto_o of_o all_o christian_a nation_n and_o now_o also_o ought_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o obey_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o see_v though_o it_o have_v fail_v sometime_o in_o charity_n and_o have_v be_v in_o case_n as_o it_o may_v true_o say_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n speak_v by_o the_o foolish_a virgin_n 25._o matth._n 25._o our_o lamp_n be_v without_o light_n yet_o it_o never_o fail_v in_o faith_n as_o theodoritus_n witness_v and_o s._n augustine_n affirm_v the_o same_o which_o special_a grace_n and_o singular_a privilege_n be_v to_o be_v impute_v unto_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o obtain_v of_o god_n for_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n rome_n evil_a life_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n ought_v not_o to_o sever_v we_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o their_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v therefore_o the_o evil_a life_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ought_v not_o to_o withdraw_v we_o from_o beleve_v and_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n preach_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o better_a credit_n hereof_o that_o be_v earnest_o to_o be_v consider_v which_o s._n augustine_n write_v epistola_fw-la 165._o where_n after_o that_o he_o have_v rehearse_v in_o order_n all_o the_o pope_n that_o succeed_v peter_n even_o to_o he_o that_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n he_o say_v thus_o in_o illum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la etc_n in_o to_o that_o rue_v of_o
perhaps_o that_o have_v be_v do_v by_o commandment_n of_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n who_o do_v many_o other_o thing_n wicked_o thereof_o write_v to_o constantina_n the_o empress_n thus_o salonitanae_n civitatis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la i_o ac_fw-la responsali_fw-la meo_fw-la nesciente_fw-la ordinatus_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la res_fw-la quae_fw-la sub_fw-la nullis_fw-la anterioribus_fw-la principibus_fw-la evenit_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o salonae_n say_v he_o be_v order_v neither_o i_o nor_o my_o depute_v make_v privye_o to_o it_o and_o herein_o that_o thing_n have_v be_v do_v which_o never_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o any_o prince_n before_o our_o day_n thus_o it_o appear_v that_o before_o a_o thousand_o year_n past_a bishop_n have_v their_o ordination_n and_o election_n confirm_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a council_n the_o pope_n approve_v of_o council_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o accustom_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o approve_v or_o disprove_v council_n i_o need_n to_o say_v nothing_o for_o prouse_n of_o it_o 19_o li._n 4._o c._n 19_o see_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o tripartite_a story_n command_v that_o no_o council_n be_v celebrate_v and_o keep_v without_o the_o advice_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n very_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o ariminum_n at_o seleucia_n at_o sirmium_n at_o antiochia_n and_o at_o the_o second_o time_n at_o ephesus_n for_o that_o they_o be_v not_o summon_v nor_o approve_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v account_v for_o lawful_a council_n but_o as_o well_o for_o that_o reject_v as_o also_o for_o their_o heretical_a determination_n the_o father_n assemble_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a send_v their_o epistle_n to_o silvester_n the_o pope_n beseech_v he_o with_o his_o consent_n to_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v concilij_fw-la quas_fw-la romana_fw-la suscipiens_fw-la confirmavit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la in_o praefatione_fw-la niceni_n concilij_fw-la what_o so_o ever_o they_o have_v ordain_v isidorus_n witness_v that_o the_o nicene_n council_n have_v set_v forth_o rule_v the_o which_o say_v he_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v and_o confirm_v the_o second_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n be_v likewise_o allow_v and_o approve_v by_o damasus_n special_o request_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o thereto_o so_o be_v the_o three_o council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o celestinus_fw-la who_o have_v there_o for_o his_o vicar_n or_o depute_n cyrillus_n the_o famous_a b._n of_o alexandria_n and_o one_o arcadius_n a_o bishop_n out_o of_o italy_n as_o for_o the_o foverth_n council_n keep_v at_o chalcedon_n the_o father_n thereof_o also_o in_o their_o epistle_n to_o leo_n the_o pope_n subscribe_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o 44._o bishop_n make_v humble_a request_n unto_o he_o to_o establish_v fortify_v and_o allow_v the_o decree_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o same_o this_o be_v find_v true_a for_o the_o four_o first_o chief_n council_n we_o need_n not_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o rest_n that_o follow_v but_o for_o the_o sure_a proufe_v of_o all_o this_o that_o chief_o be_v to_o be_v allege_v that_o constantius_n the_o arian_n emperor_n make_v so_o importune_a and_o so_o earnest_a suit_n to_o liberius_n the_o pope_n to_o confirm_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o antioch_n by_o the_o 90._o ariane_n bishop_n wherein_o athanasius_n be_v deprive_v and_o put_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n for_o he_o beleve_v as_o ammianus_n marcellinus_n write_v 15._o lib._n 15._o that_o what_o have_v be_v do_v in_o that_o council_n shall_v not_o stand_v and_o take_v effect_n onlesse_a it_o have_v be_v approve_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n which_o he_o term_v the_o eternal_a city_n now_o what_o authority_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v ever_o have_v and_o exercise_v in_o the_o assoil_n of_o bishop_n unjust_o condemn_v pope_n absolution_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o restore_v of_o they_o again_o to_o their_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v wrongful_o thrust_v out_o by_o heretic_n or_o other_o disorder_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o well_o know_v of_o all_o that_o read_v the_o story_n in_o which_o the_o ancient_a state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v describe_v that_o i_o need_n not_o but_o rehearse_v the_o name_n only_o athanasius_n of_o alexandria_n and_o paulus_n of_o constantinople_n deprive_v and_o thrust_v out_o of_o their_o bishoprike_n by_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o arianes_n assist_v with_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n appeal_v to_o rome_n to_o julius_n the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n there_o and_o by_o his_o authority_n be_v restore_v to_o their_o room_n again_o so_o leo_n assoil_v flavianus_n the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n excommunicate_v by_o dioscorus_n so_o nicolaus_n the_o first_o restore_v ignatius_n to_o the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n though_o michael_n the_o emperor_n wrought_v all_o that_o he_o can_v against_o it_o many_o other_o bishop_n have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n assoil_v and_o restore_v to_o their_o church_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a who_o have_v be_v without_o desert_n excommunicate_v deprive_v and_o put_v from_o all_o their_o dignity_n but_o to_o have_v rehearse_v these_o few_o it_o may_v suffice_v concern_v the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n both_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n pope_n reconciliation_n to_o the_o pope_n whereby_o his_o primacy_n be_v acknowlege_v and_o confess_v i_o need_n not_o say_v much_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o evident_a after_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o aphrica_n have_v continue_a in_o schism_n and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a through_o the_o entisement_n of_o aurelius_n archebishop_n of_o carthago_n for_o the_o space_n of_o one_o hundred_o year_n during_o which_o time_n by_o god_n punishment_n they_o come_v in_o to_o captivity_n of_o the_o barbarous_a and_o cruel_a vandal_n who_o be_v arian_n at_o the_o length_n when_o it_o please_v god_n of_o his_o goodness_n to_o have_v pity_n on_o his_o people_n of_o that_o province_n send_v they_o bellisarius_fw-la the_o valiant_a capitaine_fw-fr that_o vanquish_v and_o destroy_v the_o vandal_n and_o likewise_o eulalius_n that_o godly_a archebishop_n of_o carthago_n that_o bring_v the_o church_n home_o again_o and_o join_v the_o divide_a member_n unto_o the_o whole_a body_n the_o catholic_a church_n a_o public_a instrument_n contain_v the_o form_n of_o their_o repentance_n and_o of_o their_o humble_a submission_n be_v offer_v and_o exhibit_v solemn_o to_o bonifacius_n the_o second_o than_o pope_n by_o eulalius_n in_o the_o name_n of_o that_o whole_a province_n which_o be_v joyful_o receive_v and_o he_o thereupon_o forthwith_o reconcile_v of_o this_o reconciliation_n and_o restore_n of_o the_o african_a church_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n bonifacius_n write_v his_o letter_n to_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n require_v he_o with_o the_o church_n there_o about_o to_o geve_v almighty_a god_n thanks_n for_o it_o but_o here_o if_o i_o will_v show_v what_o bishop_n divide_v themselves_o through_o heresy_n schism_n or_o other_o enormity_n from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v upon_o better_a advice_n submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o same_o again_o and_o thereupon_o have_v be_v reconcile_v i_o have_v a_o large_a field_n to_o walk_v in_o as_o inferior_a bishop_n of_o sundry_a province_n have_v do_v it_o so_o have_v the_o great_a patriarch_n do_v likewise_o among_o they_o that_o to_o satisfy_v the_o malicious_a mind_n of_o eudoxia_n the_o empress_n practise_v their_o wicked_a conspiracy_n against_o chrysostome_n through_o which_o he_o be_v depose_v and_o carry_v away_o in_o to_o banishment_n alexander_n b._n of_o antioch_n and_o primate_n of_o the_o orient_a be_v one_o who_o at_o length_n strike_v with_o repentance_n for_o that_o he_o have_v be_v both_o a_o consenter_n and_o a_o promotour_n of_o that_o wicked_a act_n submit_v himself_o humby_a to_o innocentius_n the_o pope_n and_o by_o all_o mean_v seek_v to_o be_v assoil_v and_o reconcile_v and_o therefore_o send_v his_o legate_n to_o rome_n to_o exhibit_v to_o innocentius_n a_o solemn_a instrument_n of_o his_o repentance_n and_o lowly_a submission_n and_o to_o accept_v what_o shall_v be_v enjoin_v by_o which_o his_o humbleness_n innocentius_n move_v grant_v to_o his_o petition_n receive_v he_o in_o to_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n again_o and_o thus_o be_v he_o reconcile_v sundry_a the_o like_a reconciliation_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n in_o like_a case_n may_v easy_o be_v recite_v which_o for_o avoid_v of_o tediousness_n i_o pass_v over_o as_o likewise_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o as_o we_o read_v
in_o ancient_a story_n have_v forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n twelve_o time_n and_o have_v be_v reconcily_v to_o the_o same_o again_o thus_o have_v declare_v the_o supreme_a authority_n and_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o common_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n i_o need_n not_o to_o show_v further_o how_o in_o all_o question_n doubt_n and_o controversy_n touch_v faith_n and_o religion_n the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v always_o be_v consult_v how_o the_o decision_n of_o all_o doubtful_a case_n have_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o see_v and_o to_o be_v short_a how_o all_o the_o world_n have_v ever_o fetch_v light_n from_o thence_o for_o the_o proufe_v whereof_o because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v here_o declare_v brief_o i_o remit_v the_o learned_a reader_n to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n where_o he_o shall_v find_v this_o matter_n ample_o treat_v now_o for_o a_o brief_a answer_n to_o m._n juell_n who_o deni_v that_o within_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v ever_o call_v a_o universal_a bishop_n or_o the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o make_v himself_o very_o sure_a of_o it_o although_o it_o be_v a_o childish_a thing_n to_o stick_v at_o the_o name_n any_o thing_n be_v call_v by_o the_o thing_n by_o the_o name_n signify_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v yet_o to_o the_o intent_n good_a folk_n may_v understand_v that_o all_o be_v not_o truth_n of_o the_o old_a gospel_n which_o our_o new_a gospeller_n either_o affirm_v or_o deny_v churthe_n the_o pope_n above_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o call_v universal_a bishop_n and_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a churthe_n i_o will_v bring_v good_a and_o sufficient_a witness_n that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v then_o call_v both_o universal_a bishop_n or_o ecumenical_a patriarch_n which_o be_v one_o to_o wit_n bishop_n or_o principal_a father_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o also_o head_n of_o the_o church_n leo_fw-la that_o worthy_a b._n of_o rome_n be_v call_v the_o universal_a bishop_n and_o universal_a patriarch_n of_o syx_n hundred_o and_o thirty_o father_n assemble_v together_o from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o general_a council_n at_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v both_o express_v in_o that_o council_n and_o also_o clear_o affirm_v by_o s._n gregory_n in_o three_o sundry_a epistle_n to_o mauricius_n the_o emperor_n to_o eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o to_o anastasius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n thus_o that_o name_n be_v defer_v unto_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o father_n of_o that_o great_a council_n which_o by_o they_o have_v not_o be_v do_v have_v it_o be_v unlawful_a in_o very_a deed_n neither_o leo_n himself_o nor_o any_o other_o his_o successor_n ever_o call_v or_o write_v himself_o by_o that_o name_n as_o s._n gregory_n say_v much_o less_o presume_v they_o to_o take_v it_o unto_o they_o but_o rather_o use_v the_o name_n of_o humility_n call_v themselves_o each_o one_o servum_fw-la seruorum_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n yet_o sundry_a holy_a martyr_n bishop_n of_o rome_n use_v to_o call_v themselves_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v the_o same_o as_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n understand_v so_o do_v sixtus_n in_o the_o time_n of_o adrianus_n the_o emperor_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o world_n so_o do_v victor_n write_v to_o theophilus_n of_o alexandria_n so_o do_v pontianus_n write_v to_o all_o that_o beleve_v in_o christ_n before_o 1300._o year_n past_a so_o do_v stephanus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o all_o bishop_n of_o all_o province_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n cyprian_n and_o all_o these_o be_v before_o constantine_n the_o great_a and_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o time_n our_o adversary_n acknowledge_v and_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v without_o corruption_n the_o same_o title_n be_v use_v likewise_o after_o the_o nicene_n council_n by_o felix_n by_o leo_n and_o by_o diverse_a other_o before_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v expire_v neither_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n use_v this_o title_n and_o name_n only_a then selue_o to_o their_o own_o advauncement_n as_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n charge_v they_o but_o they_o be_v honour_v therewith_o also_o by_o other_o as_o namely_o innocentius_n by_o the_o father_n assemble_v in_o council_n at_o carthago_n and_o marcus_n by_o athanasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypte_n church_n head_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o other_o name_n head_n of_o the_o church_n i_o marvel_v not_o a_o little_a that_o m._n juell_n deny_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o so_o call_v either_o he_o do_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n wherein_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v condemn_v in_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o of_o his_o own_o conscience_n 10._o peter_n and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n peter_n successor_n call_v head_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o term_n equivalent_a and_o also_o express_o matth._n 10._o or_o he_o be_v not_o so_o well_o learned_a as_o of_o that_o side_n he_o be_v think_v to_o be_v for_o who_o so_o ever_o traveil_v in_o the_o read_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n find_v that_o name_n almost_o every_o where_o attribute_v to_o peter_n the_o first_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n that_o name_n i_o say_v either_o in_o term_n equivalent_a or_o express_o first_o the_o scripture_n call_v peter_n primum_fw-la the_o first_o among_o the_o apostle_n the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n say_v matthew_n be_v these_o primus_fw-la simon_n qui_fw-la dicitur_fw-la petrus_n first_o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o peter_n first_o call_v of_o christ_n but_o his_o brother_n androwe_v before_o he_o as_o be_v before_o say_v dionysius_n that_o ancient_a writer_n call_v peter_n sometime_o 3._o de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la nominibus_fw-la c._n 3._o supremum_fw-la decus_fw-la the_o high_a honour_n for_o that_o he_o be_v most_o honourable_a of_o all_o the_o apostle_n sometime_o summum_fw-la sometime_o verticalem_fw-la the_o chief_a and_o the_o high_a apostle_n origen_n upon_o the_o begin_n of_o john_n say_v let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o we_o set_v john_n before_o peter_n who_o may_v foe_n do_v for_o who_o shall_v be_v high_o of_o the_o apostle_n than_o he_o 3._o lib_fw-la 1._o epistola_fw-la 3._o who_o be_v and_o be_v call_v the_o top_n of_o they_o cyprian_n call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o consideration_n of_o that_o bishop_n supreme_a authority_n ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la the_o principal_a or_o chief_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o unity_n of_o priest_n be_v spring_v eusebius_n caesariensis_n speak_v of_o peter_n send_v to_o rome_n by_o god_n providence_n to_o vanquish_v simon_n magus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d call_v he_o potentissimum_fw-la &_o maximum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la &_o reliquorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la principem_fw-la the_o mightì_a of_o power_n and_o great_a of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n augustine_n common_o call_v peter_n primum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la first_o or_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n hierome_n ambrose_n leo_n and_o other_o doctor_n prince_z of_o the_o apostle_n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o place_n of_o john_n cap._n 21._o sequere_fw-la me_fw-it follow_v i_o among_o other_o thing_n say_v thus_o 87_o homil._n 87_o if_o any_o will_v demand_v of_o i_o how_o james_n take_v the_o see_v of_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v to_o say_v how_o he_o become_v bishop_n there_o i_o will_v answer_v that_o this_o he_o mean_v peter_n master_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n make_v he_o governor_n there_o 1_o in_o matth._n homil_n 55._o jerem._n 1_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n bring_v in_o that_o god_n say_v to_o jeremie_n i_o have_v set_v thou_o like_o a_o iron_n pillour_n and_o like_o a_o brazen_a wall_n but_o the_o father_n say_v he_o make_v he_o over_o one_o nation_n but_o christ_n make_v this_o man_n meaning_n peter_n ruler_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n etc_n and_o lest_o these_o place_n shall_v seem_v to_o attribute_v this_o supreme_a authority_n to_o peter_n only_o and_o not_o also_o to_o his_o successor_n it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v that_o irenaeus_n and_o cyprian_n acknowledge_v and_o call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n chief_a and_o principal_a and_o theodoritus_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o leo_n call_v the_o same_o in_o consideration_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v his_o primacy_n orbi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la praesidentem_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d precedent_n or_o bear_v rule_n over_o the_o world_n ambrose_n upon_o that_o place_n of_o paul_n 1._o timoth._n 3._o where_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o pillour_n and_o stay_v of_o the_o truth_n say_v thus_o cum_fw-la totus_fw-la mundus_fw-la dei_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la
tamen_fw-la domus_fw-la eius_fw-la dicitur_fw-la cvius_fw-la hodie_fw-la rector_n est_fw-la damasus_n where_o as_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v god_n yet_o the_o church_n be_v call_v his_o house_n â–ª_o the_o ruler_n whereof_o at_o these_o day_n be_v damasus_n i_o will_v not_o weary_a and_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o such_o a_o number_n of_o allegation_n be_v not_o that_o m._n juell_n bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n we_o have_v not_o one_o sentence_n nor_o clause_n for_o we_o to_o prove_v either_o this_o or_o any_o other_o of_o all_o his_o article_n but_o perhaps_o some_o one_o will_v reply_n and_o say_v yet_o i_o hear_v not_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n call_v head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n what_o force_v it_o whether_o that_o very_a term_n be_v find_v in_o any_o ancient_a writer_n or_o no_o other_o term_n of_o the_o same_o virtue_n and_o power_n be_v oftentimes_o find_v be_v it_o not_o one_o to_o say_v head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o to_o say_v ruler_n of_o god_n house_n which_o ambrose_n say_v whereof_o this_o argument_n may_v be_v make_v the_o church_n yea_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o damasus_n b._n of_o rome_n be_v ruler_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n after_o ambrose_n ergo_fw-la damasus_n be_v ruler_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o by_o like_a right_n and_o title_n be_v the_o pope_n who_o be_v b._n of_o rome_n now_o also_o ruler_n of_o the_o same_o what_o other_o be_v it_o to_o call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o principal_a church_n respect_n have_v to_o the_o bishop_n there_o and_o not_o otherwise_o wherein_o a_o figure_n of_o speech_n be_v use_v as_o ireneus_fw-la and_o cyprian_a do_v and_o precedent_n or_o set_v in_o authority_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o leo_n do_v then_o to_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 55._o in_o locum_fw-la joan_n 21_o homil_n 87._o ex_fw-la ponens_fw-la illud_fw-la sequere_fw-la i_o in_o matth._n homil_n 55._o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n what_o mean_v chrysostome_n call_v peter_n totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la magistrum_fw-la the_o master_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n that_o christ_n make_v peter_n not_o ruler_n over_o one_o nation_n as_o the_o father_n make_v jeremie_n over_o the_o jew_n but_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o other_o i_o say_v mean_v he_o thereby_o then_o that_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o to_o satisfy_v these_o man_n and_o to_o take_v away_o occasion_n of_o caville_n i_o will_v allege_v a_o few_o place_n where_o the_o express_a term_n head_n be_v attribute_v to_o peter_n the_o first_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o by_o like_a right_n to_o his_o successor_n express_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n call_v head_n of_o the_o church_n express_o and_o to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a chrysostome_n speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o peter_n and_o of_o the_o steadfastness_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o 55._o homily_n upon_o mathewe_n have_v these_o word_n among_o other_o cvius_fw-la pastor_n &_o caput_fw-la homo_fw-la piscator_fw-la atque_fw-la ignobilis_fw-la etc._n etc._n by_o which_o word_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o fisher_n a_o man_n and_o one_o of_o base_a parentage_n pass_v in_o firmness_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o diamant_n again_o in_o a_o homily_n of_o the_o praise_n of_o paul_n he_o say_v thus_o neither_o be_v this_o man_n only_o such_o a_o one_o but_o he_o also_o which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o oftentimes_o say_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o bestow_v his_o life_n for_o christ_n and_o yet_o be_v full_a sore_o afraid_a of_o death_n if_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o be_v he_o head_n of_o the_o inferior_a people_n and_o so_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n hierome_n write_v against_o jovinian_a say_v propterea_fw-la inter_fw-la duodecim_fw-la unus_fw-la eligitur_fw-la ut_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la schismatis_fw-la tollatur_fw-la occasio_fw-la for_o that_o cause_n among_o the_o twelve_o on_o be_v special_o choose_v out_o that_o the_o head_n be_v ordain_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o peter_n be_v constitute_v head_n for_o avoid_v of_o division_n and_o schism_n now_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o inconvenience_n remain_v still_o yea_o more_o than_o at_o that_o time_n for_o the_o great_a multitude_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o sundry_a other_o imperfection_n the_o same_o remedy_n must_v be_v think_v to_o continewe_v onlesse_a we_o will_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v less_o care_n of_o his_o church_n now_o that_o it_o be_v so_o much_o encreace_v than_o he_o have_v at_o the_o beginning_n when_o his_o flock_n be_v small_a for_o this_o cause_n except_o we_o deny_v god_n providence_n towards_o his_o church_n there_o be_v one_o head_n for_o avoid_v of_o schism_n also_o now_o as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o apostle_n tyme._n which_o head_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o he_o that_o be_v head_n by_o christ_n appointment_n then_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n sit_v in_o the_o seat_n that_o peter_n sit_v in_o cyrillus_n say_v petrus_n ut_fw-la princeps_fw-la caputque_fw-la caeterorun_v primus_fw-la exclamavit_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-la christus_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la vivi_fw-la peter_n as_o prince_n and_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n first_o cry_v out_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n tempore_fw-la serm._n 124._o de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la augustine_n also_o in_o a_o sermon_n to_o the_o people_n call_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n say_v totius_fw-la corporis_fw-la membrum_fw-la in_o ipso_fw-la capite_fw-la curate_n ecclesiae_fw-la &_o in_o ipso_fw-la vertice_fw-la componit_fw-la omnium_fw-la membrorum_fw-la sanitatem_fw-la he_o heal_v the_o member_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n in_o the_o head_n itself_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o top_n itself_o he_o order_v the_o health_n of_o all_o the_o member_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 75._o li._n quaest_n vet_z &_o no._n testam_fw-la q._n 75._o saluator_fw-la quando_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la &_o petro_n exolui_fw-la iubet_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la exoluisse_fw-la videtur_fw-la quia_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o saluatore_fw-la erant_fw-la omnes_fw-la causa_fw-la magisterij_fw-la ita_fw-la post_fw-la saluatorem_fw-la in_o petro_n omnes_fw-la continentur_fw-la ipsum_fw-la enim_fw-la constituit_fw-la caput_fw-la omnium_fw-la our_o saviour_n say_v augustine_n when_o as_o he_o command_v payment_n for_o the_o emperor_n to_o be_v make_v for_o himself_o and_o for_o peter_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v pay_v for_o all_o because_o as_o all_o be_v in_o our_o saviour_n for_o cause_n of_o teach_v so_o after_o our_o saviour_n all_o be_v contain_v in_o peter_n for_o he_o ordain_v he_o head_n of_o all_o here_o have_v these_o man_n the_o plain_a and_o express_v term_n head_n of_o the_o rest_n head_n of_o the_o church_n head_n of_o all_o and_o therefore_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n what_o will_v they_o have_v more_o neither_o here_o can_v they_o say_v that_o although_o this_o authority_n and_o title_n of_o the_o head_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o derive_v and_o transfer_v from_o he_o to_o his_o successor_n for_o this_o be_v manifest_a that_o christ_n institute_v his_o church_n so_o as_o it_o shall_v continewe_v to_o the_o world_n end_n 9_o cap._n 9_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o esaie_n the_o prophet_n super_fw-la solium_fw-la david_n etc._n etc._n upon_o the_o seat_n of_o david_n and_o upon_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v messiah_n sit_v to_o strengthen_v it_o and_o to_o establish_v it_o in_o judgement_n and_o righteousness_n from_o this_o day_n for_o evermore_o and_o thereof_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o ordain_v those_o who_o then_o be_v in_o ministry_n so_o as_o their_o authority_n and_o power_n shall_v be_v derive_v unto_o their_o aftercommer_n for_o the_o utility_n of_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o special_o where_o as_o he_o say_v ult._n matt_n ult._n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o as_o victor_n write_v in_o his_o story_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o vandal_n eugenius_n b._n of_o carthago_n 2._o lib._n 2._o convent_v of_o obadus_n a_o great_a capitaine_fw-fr of_o hunerike_n king_n of_o the_o vandal_n about_o a_o council_n to_o be_v keep_v in_o aphrica_n for_o matter_n of_o the_o faith_n betwixt_o the_o arian_n support_v by_o the_o king_n and_o the_o catholic_n say_v in_o this_o wise_a si_fw-mi nostram_fw-la fidem_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o the_o king_n power_n desire_v to_o know_v our_o faith_n which_o be_v one_o and_o the_o true_a let_v he_o send_v to_o his_o friend_n i_o will_v write_v also_o to_o my_o brethren_n that_o my_o fellowebishop_n come_v who_o may_v declare_v the_o faith_n that_o be_v common_a to_o you_o and_o we_o there_o he_o have_v these_o word_n &_o
which_o also_o be_v present_a to_o all_o in_o one_o moment_n of_o time_n from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n from_o the_o north_n to_o the_o sowth_n one_o in_o many_o the_o same_o in_o diverse_a place_n from_o whence_o i_o say_v come_v this_o sooth_o not_o of_o our_o duty_n or_o desert_n but_o of_o thy_o good_a will_n and_o of_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o thy_o sweetness_n for_o thou_o have_v prepare_v in_o thy_o sweetness_n for_o the_o poor_a one_o o_o god_n in_o the_o same_o sermon_n exhort_v the_o church_n to_o rejoice_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v in_o terra_fw-la sponsum_fw-la habes_fw-la in_o sacramento_n in_o coelis_fw-la habitura_fw-la es_fw-la sine_fw-la velamento_fw-la &_o hic_fw-la &_o ibi_fw-la veritas_fw-la sed_fw-la hic_fw-la palliata_fw-la ibi_fw-la manifestata_fw-la in_o the_o earth_n thou_o have_v thy_o spouse_n in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o heaven_n thou_o shall_v have_v he_o without_o veil_n or_o cover_n both_o here_o and_o also_o there_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o presence_n but_o here_o cover_v there_o open_v thus_o all_o these_o father_n as_o likewise_o the_o rest_n confess_v as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o mowth_n that_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o be_v here_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n at_o once_o in_o many_o and_o diverse_a place_n one_o and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v every_o where_o offer_v the_o one_o true_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o article_n be_v by_o they_o so_o clear_o and_o plain_o utter_v that_o figure_n signification_n trope_n and_o metaphor_n can_v find_v no_o appearance_n nor_o colour_n at_o all_o whereby_o the_o new_a master_n reason_n seem_v very_o peevishe_a christ_n be_v ascend_v ergo_fw-la he_o be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v not_o in_o earth_n christ_n body_n be_v of_o nature_n finite_a ergo_fw-la it_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o place_n circumscriptive_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o in_o many_o place_n in_o make_v of_o which_o slender_a argument_n they_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o acknowledge_v who_o body_n it_o be_v even_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n who_o power_n be_v over_o all_o and_o to_o who_o all_o thing_n obey_v but_o because_o m._n juell_n and_o they_o of_o that_o sect_n seem_v to_o set_v little_a by_o these_o father_n though_o very_o ancient_a s._n bernard_n except_v and_o of_o the_o church_n hold_v for_o saint_n i_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o authority_n of_o martin_n bucer_n a_o late_a doctor_n of_o their_o own_o side_n though_o not_o canonizate_v for_o a_o saint_n as_o yet_o truth_n truth_n confess_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o truth_n for_o that_o i_o know_v this_o new_a father_n who_o they_o esteem_v so_o much_o and_o be_v the_o reader_n of_o divinity_n in_o cambridge_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n very_o vehement_o and_o for_o so_o much_o true_o affirm_v the_o true_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o he_o say_v christ_n say_v not_o this_o be_v my_o spirit_n this_o be_v my_o virtue_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n wherefore_o we_o must_v believe_v say_v he_o christ_n body_n to_o be_v there_o even_o the_o same_o that_o do_v hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n our_o lord_n himself_o which_o in_o some_o part_n to_o declare_v he_o use_v the_o similitude_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o his_o purpose_n contrary_a to_o m._n juelles_n negative_a to_o prove_v christ_n body_n present_a and_o that_o real_o and_o substantial_o in_o what_o place_n so_o ever_o the_o sacrament_n be_v right_o minister_v his_o word_n be_v these_o matthaei_n in_o comment_n in_o 16._o cap._n matthaei_n ut_fw-la sol_fw-la verè_fw-la uno_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la coeli_fw-la visibilis_fw-la circumscriptus_fw-la est_fw-la radijs_fw-la tamen_fw-la suis_fw-la praesens_fw-la verè_fw-la &_o substantialiter_fw-la exhibetur_fw-la ubilibet_fw-la orbis_fw-la ita_fw-la dominus_fw-la etiam_fw-la si_fw-la circumscribatur_fw-la uno_fw-la loco_fw-la coeli_fw-la arcani_fw-la et_fw-la divini_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la gloriae_fw-la patris_fw-la verbo_fw-la tamen_fw-la svo_fw-la &_o sacris_fw-la symbolis_fw-la verè_fw-la et_fw-la totus_fw-la ipse_fw-la deus_fw-la et_fw-la homo_fw-la praesens_fw-la exhibetur_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la coena_fw-la eoque_fw-la substantialiter_fw-la quam_fw-la praesentiam_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la certò_fw-la agnoscit_fw-la mens_fw-la credens_fw-fr verbis_fw-la his_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o symbolis_fw-la quam_fw-la oculi_fw-la vident_fw-la et_fw-la habent_fw-la solemn_a presentem_fw-la demonstratum_fw-la &_o exhibitum_fw-la sva_fw-la corporali_fw-la luce_n res_fw-la ista_fw-la arcana_fw-la est_fw-la &_o novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la res_fw-la fidei_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la igitur_fw-la huc_fw-la admittendae_fw-la cogitationes_fw-la de_fw-la praesentatione_fw-la corporis_fw-la quae_fw-la constat_fw-la ratione_fw-la huius_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la etiam_fw-la patibilis_fw-la &_o fluxae_fw-la verbo_fw-la domini_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la in_o haerendum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o debet_fw-la fides_fw-la sensuum_fw-la defectui_fw-la praebere_fw-la supplementum_fw-la which_o may_v thus_o be_v english_v as_o the_o sun_n be_v true_o place_v determinate_o in_o one_o place_n of_o the_o visible_a heaven_n and_o yet_o be_v exhibit_v true_o and_o substantial_o by_o his_o beam_n every_o where_o abroad_o in_o the_o world_n so_o our_o lord_n although_o he_o be_v contain_v in_o one_o place_n of_o the_o secret_a and_o divine_a heaven_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o by_o his_o word_n and_o holy_a token_n he_o be_v exhibit_v present_a in_o his_o holy_a supper_n true_o and_o himself_o whole_a god_n and_o man_n and_o therefore_o substantial_o or_o in_o substance_n which_o presence_n the_o mind_n geve_v credit_n to_o these_o our_o lord_n word_n and_o token_n do_v no_o less_o certain_o acknowledge_v than_o our_o eye_n see_v and_o have_v the_o sun_n present_v show_v and_o exhibit_v with_o his_o corporal_a light_n this_o be_v a_o secret_a matter_n and_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n a_o matter_n of_o faith_n therefore_o herein_o thoughe_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v of_o such_o a_o presentation_n of_o the_o body_n as_o consist_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o life_n passable_a and_o transitory_a we_o must_v symp_o cleave_v to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o where_o our_o sense_n fail_v there_o must_v faith_n help_v to_o supply_v thus_o we_o see_v how_o bucer_n in_o sundry_a other_o point_n of_o faith_n both_o deceive_v and_o also_o a_o deceivour_n confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o article_n pyththe_o and_o plain_o such_o be_v the_o force_n of_o truth_n that_o oftentimes_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o very_a enemy_n of_o truth_n fight_v not_o with_o the_o church_n m._n juell_n but_o fight_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n fight_v with_o he_o who_o you_o have_v follow_v in_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n who_o never_o the_o less_o by_o force_n of_o truth_n be_v drive_v against_o you_o to_o confess_v the_o truth_n in_o those_o most_o plain_a word_n verè_fw-la &_o totus_fw-la ipse_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o homo_fw-la praesens_fw-la exhibetur_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la coena_fw-la eoque_fw-la substantialiter_fw-la in_o this_o holy_a supper_n himself_o god_n and_o man_n be_v exhibit_v present_a true_o and_o whole_a and_o therefore_o substantial_o now_o to_o be_v short_a whereas_o the_o chief_a argument_n that_o be_v make_v against_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o be_v deduce_v of_o nature_n in_o respect_n that_o this_o article_n seem_v to_o they_o to_o abolishe_v nature_n it_o may_v please_v they_o to_o understand_v nature_n god_n work_v above_o nature_n destroy_v not_o nature_n that_o god_n who_o be_v author_n of_o nature_n can_v by_o his_o power_n do_v with_o a_o body_n that_o which_o be_v above_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o body_n nature_n not_o destroy_v but_o keep_v and_o preserve_v whole_a which_o plato_n the_o hethen_a philosopher_n will_v soon_o have_v be_v induce_v to_o believe_v if_o he_o be_v alyve_a who_o ask_v what_o be_v nature_n answer_v quod_fw-la deus_fw-la vult_fw-la that_o which_o god_n will_n and_o therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o enoch_n and_o elias_n yet_o mortal_a by_o nature_n do_v by_o power_n of_o god_n live_v in_o body_n and_o that_o above_o nature_n abacuc_n be_v by_o the_o same_o power_n catch_v up_o and_o in_o a_o moment_n carry_v from_o jewrie_n to_o babylon_n his_o nature_n reserve_v whole_a saint_n peter_n by_o god_n according_a to_o nature_n walk_v on_o the_o earth_n the_o same_o by_o god_n beside_o nature_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n christ_n after_o condition_n of_o nature_n assumpt_v suffer_v death_n in_o body_n the_o same_o christ_n by_o his_o divine_a power_n enter_v with_o his_o body_n in_o to_o his_o disciple_n through_o door_n close_v christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n according_a to_o nature_n sit_v down_o with_o his_o twelve_o disciple_n and_o among_o they_o
occupy_v a_o place_n at_o the_o table_n visible_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n there_o he_o hold_v his_o body_n in_o his_o hand_n invisible_o 13._o in_o expositione_n psal_n 13._o for_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v ferebatur_fw-la manibꝰ_n suis_fw-la he_o be_v bear_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n where_o nature_n give_v place_n and_o his_o one_o body_n be_v in_o mo_z place_n than_o one_o very_o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr abbreviata_fw-la manus_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o hand_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o shorten_v his_o power_n be_v as_o great_a as_o ever_o it_o be_v and_o therefore_o let_v we_o not_o doubt_n but_o he_o be_v able_a to_o use_v nature_n finite_a infinite_o special_o now_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o body_n be_v glorify_v after_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o the_o lyve_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v among_o the_o dead_a so_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n above_o nature_n be_v not_o to_o be_v try_v by_o rule_n of_o nature_n and_o that_o all_o absurdity_n and_o carnal_a grossness_n be_v sever_v from_o our_o thought_n where_o true_a christian_a people_n believe_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o they_o understand_v it_o so_o to_o be_v in_o a_o mystery_n mystery_n be_v in_o a_o mystery_n now_o to_o be_v in_o a_o mystery_n be_v not_o to_o be_v comprehend_v in_o a_o place_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o be_v make_v present_a in_o sort_n and_o manner_n as_o himself_o know_v very_o so_o as_o no_o reason_n of_o man_n can_v attain_v it_o and_o so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v show_v by_o no_o example_n in_o nature_n whereof_o that_o notable_a say_n of_o s._n augustine_n may_v very_o well_o be_v report_v tempore_fw-la aug._n epis_fw-la ad_fw-la volusianun_n iten_n ser._n 159._o de_fw-la tempore_fw-la o_o homo_fw-la si_fw-la rationem_fw-la à_fw-la i_o poscis_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la mirabile_fw-la exemplum_fw-la quaeritur_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la singular_a that_o be_v o_o man_n if_o herein_o thou_o require_v reason_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v marueilouse_a seek_v for_o the_o like_a example_n and_o then_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v singular_a if_o god_n work_v be_v comprehend_v by_o reason_n say_v holy_a gregory_n it_o be_v not_o wonderouse_a neither_o faith_n have_v meed_n homil_n gregorius_n in_o homil_n whereto_o man_n reason_n geve_v proufe_v juell_n juell_n or_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v then_o hold_v up_o the_o sacrament_n over_o his_o head_n of_o the_o elevation_n or_o lyft_v up_o of_o the_o sacrament_n article_n vii_o of_z what_o weight_n this_o ceremony_n be_v to_o be_v account_v catholic_a christian_a man_n who_o you_o call_v your_o adversary_n m._n juell_n know_v no_o less_o than_o you_o very_o whereas_o it_o please_v you_o thus_o to_o jest_n and_o like_o a_o lucian_n to_o scoff_n at_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o reverend_a use_n of_o the_o same_o call_v all_o these_o article_n in_o general_a th●…_n high_a mystery_n and_o great_a key_n of_o our_o religion_n without_o which_o our_o doctrine_n can_v not_o be_v mainetein_v and_o stand_v upright_o understand_v you_o that_o this_o a_o sundry_a other_o article_n which_o you_o deny_v and_o requyr●…_n proufe_v of_o be_v not_o such_o ne_o never_o be_v so_o esteem_v the_o priest_n lift_v up_o or_o show_v of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o high_a mystery_n or_o great_a key_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v right_v well_o be_v mainetein_v and_o stand_v without_o it_o but_o it_o appear_v you_o regard_v not_o so_o much_o what_o you_o say_v as_o how_o you_o say_v somewhat_o for_o colour_n of_o deface_v the_o church_n which_o while_o you_o go_v about_o to_o do_v you_o deface_v yourself_o more_o than_o you_o seem_v to_o be_v ware_n of_o and_o do_v that_o thing_n whereby_o among_o good_a christian_a man_n special_o the_o learned_a you_o may_v be_v a_o shame_v to_o show_v your_o face_n for_o as_o you_o have_v over_o rash_o yea_o i_o may_v say_v wicked_o affirm_v the_o negative_a of_o sundry_a other_o article_n and_o stowte_o crake_v of_o your_o assurance_n thereof_o sacrament_n elevation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o you_o hau●…_n likewise_o of_o this_o for_o peruse_v the_o ancient_a father_n write_n we_o find_v record_n of_o this_o ceremony_n use_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n forward_o saint_n dionyse_n that_o be_v s._n paul_n scholar_n show_v that_o the_o priest_n at_o his_o time_n after_o the_o consecration_n be_v wont_a to_o hold_v up_o the_o dreadful_a mystery_n so_o as_o the_o people_n may_v behold_v they_o his_o word_n be_v these_o according_a to_o the_o greke_n 3._o ecclesias_fw-la hierarch_n cap._n 3._o pontifex_fw-la divina_fw-la munera_fw-la laud_fw-la prosecutus_fw-la sacrosancta_fw-la &_o augustissima_fw-la mysteria_fw-la conficit_fw-la &_o collaudata_fw-la in_o conspectum_fw-la agit_fw-fr per_fw-la symbola_fw-la sacrè_fw-la proposita_fw-la the_o bishop_n after_o that_o he_o have_v do_v his_o service_n of_o praise_v the_o divine_a gift_n consecrate_v the_o holy_a and_o most_o worthy_a mystery_n and_o bring_v they_o so_o praise_v in_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o token_n set_v forth_o for_o that_o holy_a purpose_n on_o which_o place_n the_o ancient_a greke_n writer_n of_o the_o scholies_n upon_o that_o work_n say_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d loquor_fw-la de_fw-la unius_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la nimirum_fw-la panis_fw-la divini_fw-la elevatione_fw-la quem_fw-la pontifex_fw-la in_o sublime_a attollit_fw-la dicens_fw-la sancta_fw-la sanctis_fw-la this_o father_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o lift_n up_o of_o the_o one_o blessing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o one_o form_n or_o kind_n of_o the_o sacrament_n even_o of_o that_o divine_a bread_n which_o the_o bishop_n lift_v up_o on_o high_a say_v holy_a thing_n for_o the_o holy_a in_o saint_n basiles_n and_o chrysostom_n mass_n we_o find_v these_o word_n sacerdos_n elevans_fw-la sacrum_fw-la panem_fw-la dicit_fw-la sancta_fw-la sanctis_fw-la the_o priest_n hold_v up_o that_o sacred_a bread_n say_v holy_a thing_n for_o the_o holy_a in_o saint_n chrysostom_n mass_n we_o read_v that_o as_o the_o people_n be_v kneel_v down_o after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o deacon_n the_o deacon_n see_v the_o priest_n stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n and_o take_v up_o that_o holy_a bread_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la sacram_fw-la elevationem_fw-la peragendam_fw-la palam_fw-la edicit_fw-la attendamus_fw-la to_o do_v the_o holy_a elevation_n speak_v out_o a_o loud_a let_v we_o be_v attent_a and_z then_o the_o priest_n say_v as_o he_o hold_v up_o the_o sacrament_n holy_a thing_n for_o the_o holy_a amphilochius_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v afore_o in_o the_o life_n of_o s._n basile_n speak_v of_o his_o wonderouse_a celebrate_v the_o mass_n among_o other_o thing_n say_v thus_o et_fw-la post_fw-la finem_fw-la orationum_fw-la exaltavit_fw-la panem_fw-la sine_fw-la intermissione_n orans_fw-la &_o dicens_fw-la respice_fw-la domine_fw-la jesu_fw-la christ_n etc_n and_o after_o that_o he_o have_v do_v the_o prayer_n of_o consecration_n he_o lyft_v up_o the_o bread_n without_o cease_v pray_v and_o say_v look_v upon_o we_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n etc_n the_o same_o saint_n basile_n mean_v likewise_o of_o the_o elevation_n and_o hold_v up_o of_o the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o occidental_a church_n 27._o cap_n 27._o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la where_o he_o say_v thus_o inuocationis_fw-la verba_fw-la dum_fw-la ostenditur_fw-la panis_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la &_o calix_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la quis_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la nobis_fw-la scripto_fw-la reliquit_fw-la which_o of_o the_o saint_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o in_o writing_n the_o word_n of_o invocation_n while_o the_o bread_n of_o eucharistia_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o bless_a sacrament_n in_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o the_o consecrate_a chalice_n be_v show_v in_o sight_n he_o speak_v there_o of_o many_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o great_a authority_n and_o weight_n in_o the_o church_n which_o we_o have_v by_o tradition_n only_o and_o can_v not_o be_v avouch_v by_o holy_a scripture_n of_o show_v the_o holy_a mystery_n to_o they_o that_o be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrifice_n moral_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la ephes_n sermon_n 3._o in_o moral_n the_o old_a doctor_n make_v mention_v not_o seldom_o s._n chrysostom_n declare_v the_o manner_n of_o it_o say_v that_o such_o as_o be_v account_v unworthy_a and_o heynouse_a sinner_n be_v put_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n while_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v while_o christ_n and_o that_o lamb_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v sacrifice_v which_o be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o church_n than_o be_v the_o veil_n of_o the_o altar_n take_v away_o to_o th'entent_a the_o holy_a mystery_n may_v be_v show_v in_o sight_n doubteles_a to_o stir_v the_o people_n to_o more_o devotion_n reverence_n and_o to_o the_o
the_o beginning_n until_o the_o four_o day_n be_v not_o in_o any_o subject_n but_o sustain_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n as_o he_o like_v for_o that_o first_o light_n and_o the_o sun_n be_v as_o whiteness_n and_o a_o body_n withe_v say_v s._n basile_n neither_o then_o be_v wiclef_n yet_o bear_v who_o may_v teach_v they_o that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n can_v not_o put_v a_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_n hussitarum_fw-la lib._n 2._o histor_n hussitarum_fw-la for_o so_o he_o say_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr apostasia_fw-la cap._n 5._o as_o cochlaeus_fw-la report_v hereof_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o what_o root_n the_o gospeler_n of_o our_o country_n spring_n who_o smatch_a of_o the_o sape_fw-la of_o that_o wicked_a tree_n and_o hereby_o show_v their_o kind_n appoint_v bownde_n and_o border_n to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o be_v infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a and_o thus_o by_o those_o father_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o if_o god_n can_v sustain_v and_o keep_v accident_n with_o substance_n he_o can_v so_o do_v without_o substance_n or_o that_o the_o priest_n then_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n and_o afterward_o receive_v himself_o all_o alone_a juell_n juell_n of_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n article_n xi_o of_z the_o priest_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n himself_o alone_o enough_o have_v be_v say_v before_o this_o term_n all_o here_o smatch_v of_o spite_n for_o if_o any_o devout_a person_n require_v to_o be_v partetaker_n with_o the_o priest_n be_v worthy_o dispose_v and_o examine_v he_o be_v not_o turn_v of_o but_o with_o all_o gentleness_n admit_v and_o in_o this_o case_n the_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o be_v charge_v with_o receive_v all_o alone_a albeit_o respect_n have_v to_o the_o thing_n receive_v how_o many_o so_o ever_o receive_v it_o be_v all_o of_o all_o and_o all_o of_o every_o one_o receive_v concern_v the_o break_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o divide_n of_o it_o in_o three_o part_n first_o it_o be_v break_v by_o the_o priest_n that_o we_o may_v know_v our_o lord_n in_o fractione_n panis_fw-la in_o the_o break_n of_o the_o bread_n as_o the_o two_o disciple_n acknowlege_v he_o to_o who_o jesus_n appear_v in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 24._o luc._n 24._o as_o they_o be_v go_v to_o emaus_n and_o also_o that_o thereby_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v represent_v to_o our_o remembrance_n at_o which_o his_o pretiouse_a body_n be_v for_o our_o sin_n break_v rend_v and_o tear_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o this_o manner_n be_v use_v at_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o it_o be_v witness_v by_o dionysius_n s._n paul_n scoler_n 3._o ecclesias_fw-la hierarch_n cap._n 3._o opertum_fw-la panem_fw-la pontifex_fw-la aperit_fw-la in_fw-la frusta_fw-la concidens_fw-la etc_n the_o bishop_n say_v he_o open_v the_o cover_a bread_n divide_v it_o in_o piece_n etc_n now_o touch_v the_o divide_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n apostle_n the_o divide_n of_o the_o sac._n in_o three_o part_n a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o otherwise_o a_o custom_n very_o ancient_a for_o as_o much_o as_o sergius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o live_v within_o lxxx_o year_n of_o the_o syx_n hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o m._n juell_n refer_v we_o unto_o write_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o that_o break_n or_o divide_v the_o outward_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o declare_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o same_o it_o be_v no_o small_a argument_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o this_o observation_n that_o s._n basile_n as_o amphilochius_n write_v of_o he_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n at_o his_o mass_n as_o be_v above_o rehearse_v triforme_a de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi do_v 2_o can_v triforme_a and_o where_o as_o sergius_n say_v that_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o host_n which_o be_v put_v in_o to_o the_o chalice_n betoken_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v now_o rise_v again_o and_o the_o portion_n which_o be_v receive_v and_o eat_v show_v his_o body_n yet_o walk_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o other_o portion_n remain_v on_o the_o altar_n signify_v his_o body_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v there_o herein_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v offend_v with_o all_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o mystery_n hereof_o be_v otherwise_o of_o some_o declare_v and_o of_o all_o to_o this_o end_n to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o benefit_n purchace_v to_o we_o by_o christ_n in_o his_o body_n now_o that_o this_o custom_n or_o mystical_a ceremony_n be_v not_o first_o ordain_v by_o sergius_n for_o aught_o that_o can_v be_v gather_v but_o of_o he_o expound_v only_o touch_v the_o mystery_n of_o it_o as_o use_v before_o his_o time_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n no_o one_o ancient_a council_n or_o author_n find_v upon_o who_o it_o may_v be_v father_v of_o good_a reason_n since_o it_o have_v general_o be_v observe_v we_o may_v refer_v the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o notable_a say_n for_o that_o behalf_n be_v this_o quod_fw-la universa_fw-la tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o concilijs_fw-la constitutum_fw-la sed_fw-la semper_fw-la retentum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditum_fw-la rectissimè_fw-la creditur_fw-la what_o say_v he_o the_o universal_a church_n keep_v neither_o have_v be_v ordain_v in_o council_n but_o have_v always_o be_v observe_v of_o good_a right_n we_o believe_v it_o have_v be_v delyver_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o tradition_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o conclude_v if_o any_o spark_n of_o godliness_n remain_v in_o our_o deceive_a country_n man_n and_o brethren_n they_o will_v not_o scorn_v and_o despise_v this_o ancient_a ceremony_n of_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n at_o the_o bless_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n whereof_o any_o occasion_n of_o evil_n be_v not_o only_o not_o minister_v but_o rather_o contrariwise_o whereby_o we_o be_v admonish_v and_o stir_v to_o tender_v our_o own_o soul_n health_n and_o to_o rendre_fw-fr thanks_n to_o god_n for_o the_o great_a benefit_n of_o our_o redemption_n or_o that_o who_o so_o ever_o have_v say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n juell_n juell_n a_o pledge_n a_o token_n or_o a_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n have_v therefore_o be_v judge_v for_o a_o heretic_n of_o the_o term_n figure_n figne_n token_n etc._z by_o the_o father_n apply_v to_o the_o sacrament_n article_n xii_n in_o this_o article_n we_o do_v agree_v with_o m._n juell_n in_o some_o respect_n for_o we_o confess_v it_o can_v not_o be_v avouch_v by_o scripture_n ancient_a council_n doctor_n or_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o who_o so_o ever_o have_v say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n a_o pledge_n a_o token_n or_o a_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n have_v therefore_o be_v judge_v for_o a_o heretic_n no_o man_n of_o any_o learning_n ever_o write_v so_o unlearned_o much_o less_o to_o impute_v heresy_n to_o any_o man_n for_o say_v thus_o have_v be_v any_o of_o the_o high_a mystery_n or_o great_a key_n of_o our_o religion_n with_o which_o untruth_n m._n juell_n go_v abowt_n to_o deface_v the_o truth_n wherefore_o this_o article_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v put_v in_o either_o of_o malice_n towards_o the_o church_n or_o of_o ignorance_n or_o only_o to_o fill_v up_o the_o heap_n for_o lack_v of_o better_a stuff_n peruse_v the_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o learned_a father_n we_o find_v that_o oftentimes_o they_o call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o figure_n a_o sign_n a_o token_n a_o mystery_n a_o sampler_n the_o word_n of_o they_o use_v to_o this_o purpose_n in_o their_o learned_a tongue_n be_v these_o figura_fw-la signum_fw-la symbolum_n mysterium_fw-la exemplar_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d imago_fw-la etc_n by_o which_o they_o mean_v not_o to_o diminish_v the_o truth_n of_o cristes_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o to_o signify_v the_o secret_a manner_n of_o his_o be_v in_o the_o same_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o such_o place_n where_o these_o term_n be_v use_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o sententijs_fw-la prosperi_n may_v serve_v very_o well_o dicimus_fw-la de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi do_v 2_o can_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la dicimus_fw-la which_o be_v thus_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la dicimus_fw-la quod_fw-la omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la approbare_fw-la contendimus_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la dvobus_fw-la confici_fw-la dvobus_fw-la constare_fw-la visibili_fw-la elementorum_fw-la specie_fw-la &_o invisibili_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la carne_fw-la &_o sangnine_a sacramento_n id_fw-la est_fw-la externo_fw-la sacro_fw-la signo_fw-la et_fw-la re_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la id_fw-la
serche_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o these_o place_n it_o be_v make_v clear_a and_o evident_a that_o these_o name_n figure_n image_n sign_n token_n sacrament_n and_o such_o other_o the_o like_a of_o force_n of_o their_o signification_n do_v not_o always_o exclude_v the_o truth_n of_o thing_n but_o do_v only_o show_v and_o note_v the_o manner_n of_o presence_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n that_o be_v somewhat_o obscure_a to_o sense_n little_o exercise_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n or_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n the_o image_n of_o the_o body_n do_v note_v the_o coovertnesse_n and_o secretness_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o exhibit_v and_o do_v not_o diminish_v any_o whit_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o presence_n so_o we_o do_v accord_n with_o m._n juell_n in_o this_o article_n touch_v the_o form_n of_o word_n but_o withal_o we_o have_v think_v it_o necessary_a to_o declare_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o same_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacramentary_n juell_n juell_n or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a then_o to_o have_v thirty_o xx.xu.x_fw-la or_o u_o mass_n say_v in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n of_o plurality_n of_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n article_n xiii_o as_o m._n juell_n here_o descend_v by_o diverse_a proportion_n and_o degree_n from_o xxx_o to_o u_o first_o by_o take_v away_o ten_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o then_o u_o from_o the_o rest_n three_o time_n so_o it_o may_v have_v please_v he_o also_o to_o have_v take_v away_o three_o from_o live_v the_o last_o remanent_fw-la and_o so_o to_o have_v leave_v but_o two_o in_o all_o which_o if_o he_o have_v do_v then_o shall_v we_o so_o have_v make_v up_o that_o number_n as_o in_o this_o audile_n he_o may_v not_o other_o wise_a do_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o own_o free_a promise_n but_o allow_v our_o account_n for_o good_a and_o sufficient_a for_o that_o number_n we_o be_v well_o able_a to_o make_v good_a and_o what_o reason_n have_v move_v the_o ancient_a father_n governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o think_v it_o a_o godly_a and_o a_o necessary_a thing_n to_o have_v two_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n the_o same_o reason_n in_o case_n either_o have_v or_o may_v have_v move_v they_o and_o their_o successor_n after_o they_o likewise_o to_o allow_v three_o or_o fover_v mass_n and_o in_o some_o case_n fyve_o or_o mo_z now_o if_o that_o reken_a can_v due_o be_v make_v of_o our_o part_n m._n juell_n perhaps_o will_v then_o say_v as_o common_o they_o say_v that_o confess_v their_o error_n in_o number_v that_o he_o have_v mistolde_v himself_o albeit_o it_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v marvel_v that_o he_o appoint_v we_o to_o prove_v a_o number_n of_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n that_o utter_o deny_v the_o mass_n and_o will_v have_v no_o mass_n in_o any_o church_n any_o day_n at_o all_o and_o stand_v in_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o whole_a so_o peremptore_o as_o he_o do_v it_o may_v seem_v strange_a that_o he_o shall_v thus_o frame_v this_o article_n for_o what_o reason_n be_v it_o to_o challenge_v we_o for_o proufe_v of_o so_o great_a a_o number_n since_o he_o take_v away_o all_o together_o it_o appear_v that_o be_v not_o unwitting_a how_o good_a proof_n we_o have_v for_o the_o mass_n itself_o he_o think_v to_o blank_a we_o by_o put_v we_o to_o the_o proufe_v of_o his_o number_n of_o thirty_o xx.xu.x_fw-la or_o u_o very_o this_o kind_n of_o man_n fare_v with_o the_o church_n much_o like_o unto_o strong_a thief_n who_o have_v rob_v a_o honest_a wealthy_a man_n of_o all_o his_o money_n say_v afterwards_o unto_o he_o uncourteous_o ah_o carl_n how_o come_v thou_o by_o so_o much_o old_a gold_n gospeller_n lydford_n law_n use_v by_o the_o gospeller_n or_o if_o it_o like_v not_o they_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o thief_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o rome_n they_o have_v shuffle_v themselves_o into_o they_o may_v not_o unfitte_o be_v liken_v to_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o stemerie_n at_o lidford_n in_o devonshire_n who_o as_o i_o have_v hear_v it_o common_o report_v hang_v a_o felon_n among_o the_o tynners_n in_o the_o forenoon_n and_o sit_v upon_o he_o in_o judgement_n at_o afternoon_n and_o thereof_o to_o this_o day_n such_o wrongful_a deal_n in_o a_o common_a proverb_n be_v in_o that_o country_n call_v lidford_n law_n sith_o that_o you_o m._n juell_n and_o your_o fellow_n that_o now_o sit_v on_o the_o bench_n require_v of_o we_o the_o proufe_v of_o mo_z mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n as_o it_o be_v a_o verdict_n of_o twelve_o man_n of_o equity_n and_o right_n you_o shall_v have_v hear_v our_o verdict_n ere_fw-we you_o have_v give_v sentence_n and_o condemn_v the_o mass_n day_n plurality_n of_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n now_o touch_v the_o number_n and_o iteration_n of_o the_o mass_n first_o we_o have_v good_a and_o ancient_a authority_n for_o two_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n that_o eloquent_a and_o holy_a father_n leo_n the_o first_o write_v thus_o to_o dioscorus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n volumus_fw-la illud_fw-la quoque_fw-la custodiri_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la solennior_fw-la festivitas_fw-la conventum_fw-la populi_fw-la numerosioris_fw-la indixerit_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la eam_fw-la tanta_fw-la multitudo_fw-la convenit_fw-la quae_fw-la recipi_fw-la basilica_fw-la simul_fw-la una_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la oblatio_fw-la indubitanter_fw-la iteretur_fw-la ne_fw-la ijs_fw-la tantum_fw-la admissis_fw-la ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la devotionem_fw-la qui_fw-la primi_fw-la advenerint_fw-la videatur_fw-la ij_o qui_fw-la postmodum_fw-la confluxerint_fw-la non_fw-la recepti_fw-la cum_fw-la plenum_fw-la pietatis_fw-la atque_fw-la rationis_fw-la sit_fw-la ut_fw-la quoties_fw-la basilican_n in_o quae_fw-la agitur_fw-la praesentia_fw-la novae_fw-la plebis_fw-la impleverit_fw-la toties_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la subsequens_fw-la offeratur_fw-la this_o order_n we_o will_v to_o be_v keep_v that_o when_o a_o number_n of_o people_n come_v to_o church_n together_o at_o a_o solemn_a feast_n if_o the_o multitude_n be_v so_o great_a as_o may_v not_o well_o be_v receive_v in_o one_o church_n at_o once_o that_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n hardly_o be_v do_v again_o lest_o if_o they_o only_o shall_v be_v admit_v to_o this_o devotion_n who_o come_v first_o they_o that_o come_v afterward_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n full_a of_o godliness_n and_o reason_n that_o how_o oftetymes_o the_o church_n where_o the_o service_n be_v do_v be_v fill_v with_o a_o new_a company_n of_o people_n so_o oftentimes_o the_o sacrifice_n there_o eftsoons_o be_v offer_v by_o this_o father_n who_o the_o great_a general_n council_n of_o chalcedon_n agnise_v for_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o honour_v with_o the_o singular_a title_n of_o the_o universal_a bishop_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o if_o anywhere_o one_o church_n can_v not_o convenient_o hold_v all_o the_o people_n together_o at_o one_o time_n they_o that_o come_v after_o the_o first_o company_n shall_v have_v their_o devotion_n serve_v by_o have_v a_o other_o mass_n celebrate_v again_o and_o lest_o perhaps_o some_o might_n doubt_n wether_n that_o be_v lawful_a so_o to_o be_v do_v or_o no_o or_o be_v cause_v they_o some_o doubt_v thereof_o as_o now_o likewise_o some_o seem_v to_o doubt_n of_o it_o to_o put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o doubt_n he_o say_v assure_o sacrificij_fw-la oblatio_fw-la indubitanter_fw-la iteretur_fw-la let_v they_o not_o stick_v to_o iterate_v or_o do_v again_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v the_o mass_n be_v celebrate_v again_o indubitanter_fw-la without_o cast_v peril_n without_o stick_v staggare_v or_o doubt_v in_o that_o epistle_n he_o show_v two_o great_a cause_n why_o mo_z mass_n than_o one_o may_v be_v do_v in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n the_o one_o be_v lest_o the_o aftercommer_n shall_v seem_v reject_v non_fw-la recepti_fw-la not_o receive_v the_o other_o be_v that_o the_o one_o part_n of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o defraud_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o their_o devotion_n â–ª_o as_o himself_o say_v necesse_fw-la est_fw-la auten_v ut_fw-la quaedam_fw-la pars_fw-la populi_fw-la sva_fw-la devotione_fw-la privetur_fw-la si_fw-la unius_fw-la tantum_fw-la missae_fw-la more_fw-it seruato_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offer_n non_fw-la possint_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la prima_fw-la diei_fw-la parte_fw-la convenerint_fw-la it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o a_o part_n of_o the_o people_n be_v bereave_v of_o their_o devotion_n if_o the_o custon_n of_o have_v one_o mass_n only_o keep_v none_o may_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n but_o such_o as_o come_v to_o church_n together_o in_o the_o morning_n or_o first_o part_n of_o the_o day_n now_o the_o people_n may_v neither_o be_v reject_v who_o god_n have_v choose_v nor_o sparkle_v abroad_o who_o our_o lord_n
be_v not_o special_o forbid_a and_o by_o that_o all_o may_v be_v witness_n which_o be_v not_o special_o forbid_a all_o may_v make_v their_o proctoure_n to_o answer_v for_o they_o in_o judgement_n which_o be_v not_o forbid_a in_o the_o special_a prohibition_n for_o that_o the_o edict_n of_o proctoure_n and_o witness_n be_v prohibitorie_a testibus_fw-la l._n julia._n ff_n de_fw-fr testibus_fw-la and_o because_o lex_n julia_n do_v forbydde_v a_o woman_n conden_v for_o adultery_n to_o bear_v witness_n in_o judgement_n thereof_o the_o text_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n conclude_v that_o woman_n may_v bear_v witness_n in_o judgement_n exceptis_fw-la exceptio_fw-la confirmat_fw-la regulam_fw-la in_fw-la non_fw-la exceptis_fw-la and_o they_o say_v further_o that_o exception_n in_o one_o case_n confirm_v the_o general_a rule_n and_o make_v the_o rest_n that_o be_v not_o except_v more_o sure_a and_o stable_a and_o to_o be_v in_o force_n in_o contrary_a sense_n to_o the_o exception_n but_o i_o will_v not_o bring_v m._n juell_n out_o of_o his_o profess_a study_n to_o far_o to_o seek_v law_n for_o in_o deed_n we_o need_n not_o go_v to_o law_n for_o these_o matter_n wherein_o the_o church_n have_v give_v sentence_n for_o we_o but_o that_o our_o adversary_n refuse_v the_o judge_n after_o sentence_n which_o if_o they_o have_v do_v when_o order_n permit_v it_o at_o the_o beginning_n and_o have_v plain_o as_o i_o fear_v i_o some_o of_o they_o think_v deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n or_o at_o least_o of_o christ_n court_n in_o his_o catholic_a church_n we_o shall_v not_o have_v stryve_v so_o long_o about_o these_o matter_n we_o will_v have_v embrace_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o his_o church_n quiet_o while_o they_o seek_v a_o other_o judge_n according_a to_o their_o appetite_n and_o fantasy_n as_o turk_n and_o infidel_n do_v now_o if_o m._n juell_n be_v not_o so_o precise_a in_o his_o judgement_n of_o allow_v the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o to_o condemn_v the_o church_n that_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o generation_n then_o we_o may_v allege_v unto_o he_o the_o twelve_o council_n of_o toledo_n in_o spain_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 680._o for_o proufe_v that_o many_o mass_n be_v celebrate_v in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n for_o the_o same_o appear_v plain_o by_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n there_o ●_o can._n ●_o relatum_fw-la nobis_fw-la est_fw-la quosdam_fw-la de_fw-fr sacerdotibus_fw-la non_fw-la tot_fw-la vicibus_fw-la communionis_fw-la sanctae_fw-la gratiam_fw-la sumere_fw-la quot_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la in_o una_fw-la die_fw-la videntur_fw-la offer_n say_v in_o uno_fw-la die_fw-la si_fw-la plurima_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la deo_fw-la offerant_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la se_fw-la oblationibus_fw-la à_fw-la communione_fw-la suspendunt_fw-la &_o in_o sola_fw-la tantum_fw-la extrema_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la oblatione_fw-la communionis_fw-la sanctae_fw-la gratiam_fw-la sumunt_fw-la quasi_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la toties_fw-la illis_fw-la vero_fw-la &_o singulari_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la participandum_fw-la quoties_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la immolatio_fw-la facta_fw-la constiterit_fw-la nam_fw-la ecce_fw-la apostolus_fw-la dicit_fw-la nun_n qui_fw-la edunt_fw-la hostias_fw-la participes_fw-la sunt_fw-la altaris_fw-la 10._o 1._o cor._n 10._o certum_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la hi_o qui_fw-la sacrificantes_fw-la non_fw-la edunt_fw-la rei_fw-la sunt_fw-la dominici_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la quicunque_fw-la ergo_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la deinceps_fw-la divino_fw-la altario_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la oblaturus_fw-la accesserit_fw-la &_o see_v a_o communione_fw-la suspenderit_fw-la ub_z ipsa_fw-la qua_fw-la se_fw-la indecenter_n privauit_fw-la gratia_fw-la communionis_fw-la anno_fw-la uno_fw-la repulsum_fw-la se_fw-la noverit_fw-la nam_fw-la quale_fw-la erit_fw-la illud_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la cvi_fw-la nec_fw-la ipse_fw-la sacrificans_fw-la particeps_fw-la esse_fw-la cognoscitur_fw-la ergo_fw-la modis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la est_fw-la tenendum_fw-la ut_fw-la quotiescunque_fw-la sacrificans_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la in_o altario_fw-la immolat_a toties_fw-la perceptionis_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la se_fw-la participem_fw-la praebeat_fw-la it_o be_v show_v unto_o we_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a priest_n who_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n so_o many_o time_n how_o many_o sacrifice_n they_o seem_v to_o offer_v in_o one_o day_n but_o if_o they_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n many_o facrifice_n by_o themselves_o in_o one_o day_n in_o all_o those_o oblation_n they_o suspend_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n and_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n only_o at_o the_o last_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o oftentimes_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o true_a and_o singular_a sacrifice_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v do_v for_o behold_v the_o apostle_n say_v 10._o 1._o cor._n 10._o be_v not_o they_o which_o eat_v sacrifice_n partaker_n of_o the_o altar_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o who_o do_v sacrifice_n do_v not_o eat_v be_v guilty_a of_o our_o lord_n sacrament_n wherefore_o what_o priest_n so_o ever_o hereafter_o shall_v come_v unto_o the_o holy_a altar_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o suspend_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n be_v it_o know_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o be_v repel_v and_o thrust_v away_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o communion_n whereof_o he_o have_v unsemely_a bereve_v himself_o whereby_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o stand_v excommunicate_a for_o the_o space_n of_o one_o year_n for_o what_o a_o sacrifice_n shall_v that_o be_v whereof_o neither_o he_o himself_o that_o sacrifice_v be_v know_v to_o be_v partaker_n wherefore_o by_o all_o mean_v this_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v that_o how_o oftentimes_o so_o ever_o the_o priest_n do_v sacrifice_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n on_o the_o altar_n so_o oftentimes_o he_o receive_v and_o make_v himself_o partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n mass_n sacrifice_n take_v for_o the_o mass_n here_o by_o the_o word_n sacrifice_n and_o offering_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o father_n understande_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o call_v the_o mass_n for_o though_o the_o word_n missa_fw-la be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n and_o many_o time_n find_v in_o the_o father_n yet_o they_o use_v more_o common_o the_o word_n sacrifice_n neither_o can_v the_o enemy_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n expound_v this_o canon_n of_o the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o a_o man_n heart_n but_o of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o priest_n come_v to_o the_o holy_a altar_n to_o offer_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n offer_v on_o the_o altar_n for_o so_o be_v their_o word_n where_o he_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n which_o be_v the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n this_o much_o grant_v as_o by_o any_o reasonable_a understanding_n it_o can_v not_o be_v draw_v nor_o by_o rack_a can_v be_v stretch_v to_o any_o other_o sense_n we_o have_v here_o good_a authority_n for_o the_o have_v of_o many_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n and_o where_o as_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n allow_v many_o mass_n in_o one_o day_n say_v by_o one_o priest_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o allow_v the_o same_o say_v by_o sundry_a priest_n in_o one_o day_n if_o our_o adversary_n say_v this_o may_v have_v be_v do_v in_o sundry_a place_n whereby_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o frustrate_v our_o purpose_n touch_v this_o article_n we_o answer_v that_o beside_o th'approue_v of_o the_o mass_n by_o they_o so_o confess_v it_o be_v vain_a and_o fryvolouse_a to_o imagine_v such_o gad_v of_o the_o priest_n from_o church_n to_o church_n for_o say_v many_o mass_n in_o one_o day_n doubtelesse_a the_o father_n of_o that_o toletane_a council_n mean_v of_o many_o mass_n say_v in_o one_o place_n in_o a_o day_n as_o leo_n do_v for_o serve_v the_o faithful_a people_n devotion_n that_o resort_v to_o church_n at_o sundry_a hour_n as_o we_o see_v the_o people_n do_v now_o that_o so_o all_o may_v be_v satisfy_v which_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v if_o one_o mass_n only_o have_v be_v say_v if_o m._n juell_n agnise_v and_o accept_v for_o good_a the_o authority_n of_o this_o council_n as_o the_o church_n do_v then_o must_v he_o allow_v these_o many_o thing_n which_o he_o and_o the_o sacramentary_n to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o their_o power_n and_o cunning_a labour_v to_o disprove_v and_o deface_v first_o the_o bless_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o the_o father_n of_o this_o council_n call_v the_o true_a and_o singular_a sacrifice_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n which_o
godly_a thing_n neither_o behooveful_a the_o same_o be_v do_v in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n nor_o that_o all_o thing_n touch_v god_n be_v meddle_v withal_o which_o advertisement_n take_v no_o place_n where_o all_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o curiouse_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o own_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o the_o scripture_n itself_o say_v they_o show_v plain_o that_o of_o covenience_n the_o scripture_n ought_v not_o be_v make_v common_a to_o all_o person_n for_o christ_n affirm_v the_o same_o with_o his_o own_o word_n where_o he_o say_v to_o his_o apostle_n 8._o lucae_n 8._o unto_o you_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o to_o other_o in_o parable_n that_o when_o they_o see_v they_o shall_v not_o see_v and_o when_o they_o hear_v they_o shall_v not_o understande_v they_z to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v these_o secret_n be_v none_o other_o than_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n or_o disciple_n they_z to_o who_o this_o be_v not_o give_v but_o must_v learn_v parable_n be_v they_o for_o who_o it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o mystery_n then_o to_o know_v they_o lest_o they_o abuse_v they_o and_o be_v the_o more_o grievous_o condemn_v if_o they_o set_v little_a by_o they_o which_o we_o see_v common_o do_v among_o the_o common_a people_n 2._o vide_fw-la hilarium_fw-la in_o psal_n 2._o it_o be_v report_v by_o sundry_a ancient_a writer_n of_o great_a authority_n that_o among_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n the_o seventy_o elder_n only_o can_v read_v and_o understande_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a book_n that_o we_o call_v the_o bible_n for_o whereas_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n have_v no_o vocalle_n they_o only_o have_v the_o skill_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o consonantes_fw-la and_o thereby_o the_o vulgar_a people_n be_v keep_v from_o read_v of_o it_o by_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v think_v that_o pretiouse_a stone_n shall_v not_o be_v cast_v before_o swine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v such_o as_o be_v not_o call_v thereto_o as_o be_v for_o their_o unreverent_a curiosity_n and_o impure_a life_n unworthy_a here_o i_o need_v not_o to_o spend_v time_n in_o reherse_v the_o manifold_a difficulty_n of_o these_o holy_a letter_n through_o which_o the_o read_n of_o they_o to_o the_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a people_n have_v their_o wit_n exercise_v in_o no_o kind_n of_o learning_n their_o mind_n occupy_v in_o worldly_a care_n their_o heart_n carry_v away_o with_o the_o love_n of_o thing_n they_o lust_n after_o cantica_fw-la bernard_n super_fw-la cantica_fw-la be_v not_o very_o profitable_a as_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o vain_a upon_o blind_a eye_n say_v a_o holy_a father_n so_o to_o no_o purpose_n or_o profit_n be_v the_o labour_n of_o a_o worldly_a and_o natural_a man_n take_v for_o the_o attain_v of_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n very_o emonge_v other_o this_o incommoditie_n be_v see_v by_o daily_a experience_n hereof_o to_o proceed_v that_o of_o the_o people_n such_o as_o aught_o of_o right_a to_o take_v lest_o upon_o they_o be_v now_o become_v censour_n and_o judge_n of_o all_o despiser_n of_o the_o more_o part_n and_o which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o heretic_n mocker_n of_o the_o whole_a simplicity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n use_v as_o pap_n or_o milk_n to_o nourrishe_v her_o tender_a babe_n withal_o that_o it_o be_v better_o for_o they_o not_o to_o read_v then_o by_o read_v so_o to_o be_v pufte_v up_o and_o make_v insolent_a which_o evil_a come_v not_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o of_o their_o own_o malice_n and_o evil_a disposition_n the_o danger_n and_o hurt_n which_o the_o common_a people_n read_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o own_o language_n bring_v after_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o that_o reprove_v the_o same_o be_v great_a sundry_a and_o many_o i_o will_v here_o as_o it_o be_v but_o touch_v a_o few_o of_o they_o leave_v the_o whole_a matter_n itself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n first_o see_v the_o poison_n of_o heretic_n do_v most_o infect_a the_o common_a people_n and_o all_o heretic_n draw_v their_o venom_n out_o of_o the_o bible_n under_o pretence_n of_o god_n word_n it_o be_v not_o think_v good_a by_o these_o man_n to_o let_v every_o curiouse_a and_o busy_a body_n of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n to_o read_v and_o examine_v the_o bible_n in_o their_o common_a language_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o the_o learned_a discrete_a and_o sober_a lie_v man_n to_o be_v imbar_v of_o that_o liberty_n again_o if_o heresy_n spring_n of_o wrong_a understanding_n 2._o de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la li._n 2._o not_o of_o the_o scripture_n as_o hilarius_n say_v heresy_n be_v of_o understanding_n not_o of_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n not_o the_o word_n be_v a_o crime_n who_o shall_v soon_o fall_v into_o heresy_n than_o the_o common_a people_n who_o can_v not_o understande_v that_o they_o read_v very_o it_o seem_v a_o thing_n hard_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o unlearned_a people_n shall_v understande_v that_o which_o the_o best_a learned_a man_n with_o long_a study_n and_o great_a travaill_n can_v scarce_o at_o length_n attain_v whereas_o luther_n will_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v translate_v into_o every_o vulgar_a tongue_n for_o that_o they_o be_v light_v and_o easy_a to_o understande_v he_o be_v confute_v by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o for_o both_o s._n peter_n and_o also_o s._n paul_n acknowlege_v in_o they_o to_o be_v great_a difficulty_n by_o occasion_n whereof_o some_o misconstrue_v they_o to_o their_o own_o damnation_n 4._o 2._o pet._n 3._o 1._o tim_n 1._o 2._o cor._n 4._o some_o understande_v not_o what_o thing_n they_o speak_v nor_o of_o what_o thing_n they_o affirm_v and_o to_o some_o the_o gospel_n that_o s._n paul_n preach_v be_v hide_v even_o to_o they_o which_o perish_v if_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a how_o err_v arius_n how_o macedonius_n how_o eunomius_n how_o nestorius_n how_o many_o mo_z man_n of_o great_a learning_n special_o see_v they_o all_o take_v occasion_n of_o their_o error_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o right_o understand_v luther_n say_v that_o s._n hierome_n be_v oversee_v in_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o s._n augustine_n err_v in_o the_o same_o that_o s._n ambrose_n cyprian_n hilary_n basile_n and_o chrysostome_n the_o best_a learned_a doctor_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr captivitate_fw-la babilonica_fw-la he_o speak_v of_o they_o very_o honourable_o and_o grant_v that_o they_o have_v labour_v in_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n worthy_o and_o that_o they_o have_v employ_v great_a diligence_n in_o open_v the_o scripture_n if_o these_o be_v of_o so_o excellent_a learning_n after_o long_a exercise_n in_o the_o holy_a letter_n after_o long_a study_n and_o watch_n after_o long_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n after_o mortification_n of_o themselves_o and_o purgation_n of_o carnal_a affection_n be_v deceive_v as_o he_o witness_v how_o can_v he_o say_v they_o be_v clear_a plain_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o if_o these_o worthy_a father_n be_v deceive_v in_o one_o point_n or_o two_o be_v it_o not_o likely_a the_o common_a people_n may_v be_v deceive_v in_o many_o special_o their_o diligence_n and_o study_v not_o be_v comparable_a to_o they_o and_o their_o lyve_n not_o be_v such_o as_o the_o cleanness_n of_o their_o inward_a affect_n may_v lighten_v their_o understanding_n and_o the_o anoint_v of_o god_n may_v teach_v they_o and_o lest_o all_o the_o unlearned_a lie_v people_n shall_v seem_v hereby_o utter_o reject_v from_o hope_n of_o understand_v god_n word_n without_o teach_v of_o other_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a a_o man_n be_v he_o never_o so_o unlearned_a exercise_v in_o long_a prayer_n accustom_v to_o fervent_a contemplation_n be_v bring_v by_o god_n into_o his_o inward_a cellares_fw-la may_v from_o thence_o obtain_v the_o true_a understanding_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n no_o less_o than_o any_o other_o always_o bring_v up_o in_o learning_n of_o what_o sort_n s._n antony_n that_o holy_a and_o perfect_v man_n the_o eremite_n of_o egypte_n be_v who_o as_o saint_n augustine_n write_v christiana_n prologo_fw-la in_o libros_fw-la de_fw-la doctrina_fw-la christiana_n without_o any_o knowledge_n of_o letter_n both_o can_v the_o scripture_n by_o hart_n with_o hear_v and_o understode_v they_o wise_o with_o think_v and_o that_o holy_a man_n who_o s._n gregory_n speak_v of_o who_o lie_v bedrid_a many_o year_n for_o siknes_n of_o body_n through_o earnest_a prayer_n and_o devout_a meditation_n obtain_v health_n of_o mind_n and_o understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n never_o have_v learned_a letter_n so_o as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o
the_o reader_n will_v god_n of_o all_o the_o write_n of_o your_o sect_n against_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o be_v no_o less_o beside_o reason_n and_o truth_n the_o intent_n be_v no_o worse_o the_o danger_n ensue_v no_o great_a and_o as_o for_o commendation_n of_o those_o unsemely_a and_o unworthy_a thing_n those_o rhetorician_n have_v not_o bring_v good_a and_o true_a reason_n but_o only_o a_o probability_n of_o talk_n right_o so_o for_o confirmation_n of_o your_o negative_a divinity_n and_o of_o many_o new_a strange_a and_o false_a doctrine_n you_o have_v no_o sure_a proof_n but_o shadow_n colour_n and_o show_v only_o that_o perhaps_o may_v dazzle_v blear_a eye_n and_o deceive_v the_o unlearned_a but_o the_o learned_a wise_a and_o by_o any_o way_n godly_a wise_n will_v soon_o contemn_v the_o same_o for_o they_o be_v assure_v how_o probable_o so_o ever_o you_o teach_v or_o write_v that_o the_o church_n always_o assist_v and_o prompt_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n err_v not_o and_o that_o against_o truth_n already_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n in_o the_o universal_a church_n teach_v and_o receive_v no_o truth_n can_v be_v allege_v as_o he_o be_v very_o simple_a who_o be_v bear_v in_o hand_n by_o a_o sophister_n and_o drive_v by_o force_n of_o sophistical_a argument_n to_o grant_v that_o he_o have_v horn_n think_v so_o in_o deed_n and_o therefore_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o his_o forehead_n so_o who_o so_o ever_o through_o your_o teach_a fall_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n into_o the_o error_n of_o our_o time_n from_o the_o straightness_n of_o christian_a life_n into_o the_o carnal_a liberty_n of_o this_o new_a gospel_n from_o devotion_n into_o the_o insensibility_n which_o we_o see_v the_o people_n to_o live_v in_o from_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n to_o the_o desperate_a contempt_n of_o all_o virtue_n and_o goodness_n hereby_o they_o show_v they_o self_n to_o be_v such_o as_o have_v unstable_a heart_n which_o be_v give_v over_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o their_o flesh_n which_o have_v no_o delight_n ne_o feeling_n of_o god_n which_o like_a turk_n and_o epicure_n seek_v only_o for_o the_o commodity_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n have_v no_o regard_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v but_o the_o godly_a sort_n who_o heart_n be_v establish_v with_o grace_n who_o pant_v and_o labour_v to_o live_v after_o the_o spirit_n continual_o mortify_v their_o flesh_n who_o delight_n be_v to_o serve_v god_n who_o be_v keep_v and_o hold_v within_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n though_o they_o geve_v you_o their_o hear_n and_o that_o of_o constraint_n not_o of_o will_n yet_o will_v not_o they_o geve_v you_o their_o like_n nor_o consent_v wherefore_o m._n juell_n see_v we_o have_v perform_v that_o which_o you_o have_v over_o bold_o say_v we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v see_v for_o proufe_v of_o these_o arcicle_n we_o have_v bring_v more_o than_o you_o bear_v your_o hearer_n in_o hand_n we_o have_v to_o bring_v see_v you_o perceive_v yourself_o herein_o to_o have_v do_v more_o then_o stand_v with_o learning_n modesty_n or_o good_a advice_n see_v in_o case_n of_o any_o one_o clause_n or_o sentence_n for_o our_o part_n bring_v you_o have_v with_o so_o many_o protestation_n promise_v to_o yield_v and_o to_o subscribe_v unto_o we_o see_v by_o perform_v your_o promise_n you_o may_v do_v so_o much_o good_a to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o yourself_o see_v nothing_o can_v be_v just_o allege_v for_o keep_v of_o you_o from_o satisfy_v your_o promise_n and_o return_v to_o the_o church_n again_o see_v so_o great_a respect_n both_o of_o temporal_a and_o of_o heavenly_a preferment_n invite_v you_o and_o call_v you_o from_o part_n and_o sect_n where_o you_o remain_v with_o most_o certain_a danger_n of_o your_o soul_n to_o the_o safe_a port_n of_o christ_n church_n see_v by_o so_o do_v you_o shall_v not_o do_v that_o which_o be_v singular_a but_o common_a to_o you_o with_o many_o other_o man_n of_o right_a good_a fame_n and_o estimation_n final_o see_v if_o you_o shall_v as_o always_o for_o the_o most_o part_n heretic_n have_v do_v continue_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o your_o untrue_a doctrine_n and_o travaill_n in_o set_v forth_o erroneouse_a treatise_n for_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o you_o shall_v gaigne_v thanks_n of_o no_o other_o but_o of_o the_o light_a and_o worst_a sort_n of_o the_o people_n and_o persuade_v none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v of_o that_o mark_n we_o trust_v you_o will_v upon_o mature_a deliberation_n in_o your_o sad_a year_n change_v the_o counsel_n which_o you_o like_v in_o your_o youth_n we_o trust_v you_o will_v examine_v better_o by_o learn_v the_o new_a doctrine_n which_o you_o with_o many_o other_o be_v draw_v unto_o by_o swea_fw-mi of_o the_o time_n when_o by_o course_n of_o age_n you_o want_v judgement_n we_o trust_v you_o will_v call_v back_o yourself_o from_o error_n and_o heresy_n advise_o which_o you_o have_v mainetein_v rash_o and_o set_v forth_o by_o word_n and_o write_v busy_o and_o therein_o assure_v yourself_o of_o the_o truth_n confident_o thus_o shall_v your_o error_n seem_v to_o proceed_v of_o ignorance_n not_o of_o malice_n thus_o shall_v you_o make_v some_o recompense_n for_o hurt_v do_v thus_o shall_v you_o in_o some_o degree_n discharge_v yourself_o before_o god_n and_o man_n thus_o shall_v you_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o church_n again_o out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n whether_o be_v restore_v you_o may_v from_o hence_o forth_o in_o certain_a expectation_n of_o the_o bless_a hope_n 2._o tit._n 2._o lead_v a_o life_n more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n to_o who_o be_v all_o praise_n honour_n and_o glory_n amen_n a_o table_n of_o the_o article_n utter_v affirmative_o against_o m._n juelles_n negative_n of_z mass_n without_o a_o number_n of_o other_o receive_v the_o communion_n with_o the_o priest_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o place_n which_o the_o gospeller_n call_v private_a mass_n folio_n 9_o of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n fol._n 31._o of_o the_o church_n service_n in_o learned_a tongue_n which_o the_o unlearned_a people_n in_o old_a time_n in_o sundry_a place_n understand_v not_o fol._n 50._o of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n fol._n 75._o of_o the_o term_n real_o substantial_o corporal_o carnal_o natural_o found_n in_o the_o doctor_n treat_v of_o the_o true_a be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n fol._n 96._o of_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o tyme._n fol._n 104._o of_o the_o elevation_n or_o lyft_v up_o of_o the_o sacrament_n fol._n 109._o of_o the_o worship_a or_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fol._n 111._o of_o the_o reverend_a hang_v up_o of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o a_o canopy_n fol._n 121._o of_o the_o remain_a of_o the_o accident_n without_o their_o substance_n in_o the_o sacrament_n fol._n 123._o of_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n in_o three_o part_n fol._n 128._o of_o the_o term_n figure_n sign_n token_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o father_n apply_v to_o the_o sacrament_n fol._n 129._o of_o plurality_n of_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n fol._n 138._o of_o image_n fol._n 145._o of_o the_o people_n read_v the_o bible_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n fol._n 153._o of_o secret_a pronounce_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n fol._n 161._o of_o the_o priest_n authority_n to_o offer_v up_o christ_n to_o his_o father_n fol._n 164._o of_o the_o priest_n say_v mass_n for_o a_o other_o fol._n 172._o of_o application_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n death_n to_o other_o by_o mean_a of_o prayer_n in_o the_o mass_n fol._n 173._o of_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la what_o it_o be_v and_o whether_o it_o remove_v sin_n fol._n 174._o of_o call_v the_o sacrament_n lord_n and_o god_n fol._n 176._o of_o the_o remain_a of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n be_v entire_a and_o whole_a fol._n 182._o what_o be_v that_o the_o mouse_n or_o worm_n eat_v fol._n 184._o what_o this_o pronoune_n hoc_fw-la point_v in_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n fol._n 185._o who_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o accident_n or_o the_o bread_n and_o wyne_fw-mi fol._n 185._o of_o the_o unspeakable_a manner_n of_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wyne_fw-mi fol._n 186._o a_o table_n of_o the_o chief_a point_n in_o these_o article_n utter_v the_o number_n shewth_n the_o leaf_n a_o the_o first_o side_n b_o the_o second_o side_n of_o the_o leaf_n etc_fw-la note_v the_o matter_n further_o prosecute_v in_o that_o as_o follow_v atticle_n i._o no_o mass_n private_a in_o itself_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o circumstance_n 9_o a._n the_o term_n private_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o mass_n